Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n cause_n just_a separation_n 3,235 5 9.9864 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A33380 An historical defence of the Reformation in answer to a book intituled, Just-prejudices against the Calvinists / written in French by the reverend and learned Monsieur Claude ... ; and now faithfully translated into English by T.B., M.A.; Défense de la Réformation. English Claude, Jean, 1619-1687.; T. B., M.A. 1683 (1683) Wing C4593; ESTC R11147 475,014 686

There are 39 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

transubstantiation_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n and_o that_o which_o be_v yet_o further_o considerable_a be_v that_o as_o the_o essential_a truth_n of_o religion_n be_v so_o link_v with_o one_o another_o that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o that_o may_v not_o be_v as_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v the_o centre_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o may_v not_o have_v reference_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o immediate_a connexion_n and_o which_o all_o the_o other_o may_v not_o serve_v to_o prove_v and_o uphold_v which_o make_v out_o divers_a way_n or_o manner_n of_o establish_v they_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o most_o simple_a even_o so_o those_o error_n that_o be_v destructive_a be_v so_o repugnant_a to_o those_o truth_n that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o which_o may_v not_o be_v oppose_v not_o only_o by_o all_o in_o general_n but_o even_o almost_o by_o each_o one_o in_o particular_a which_o show_v that_o there_o be_v divers_a way_n of_o overthrow_v they_o and_o destroy_v they_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o weak_a and_o when_o they_o shall_v escape_v one_o of_o those_o way_n they_o will_v be_v sufficient_o overthrow_v by_o another_o for_o example_n transubstantiation_n which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o sincerity_n of_o god_n be_v also_o repugnant_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o the_o formation_n of_o his_o body_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n to_o the_o state_n of_o that_o glory_n wherein_o he_o be_v at_o present_a to_o the_o article_n of_o his_o ascension_n and_o of_o his_o existence_n in_o heaven_n to_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o he_o dwell_v in_o we_o which_o be_v by_o his_o spirit_n and_o by_o our_o faith_n to_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n which_o we_o shall_v have_v for_o his_o flesh_n and_o for_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v spiritual_a to_o the_o character_n of_o both_o the_o sacrament_n wherein_o there_o never_o be_v any_o transubstantiation_n make_v and_o to_o the_o perpetual_a order_n that_o god_n observe_v when_o he_o wrought_v miracle_n which_o be_v to_o lay_v they_o open_v to_o man_n eye_n and_o sense_n so_o that_o when_o a_o man_n shall_v not_o be_v capable_a of_o perceive_v any_o of_o those_o repugnance_n he_o will_v perceive_v the_o other_o which_o will_v produce_v the_o same_o effect_n and_o which_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v he_o reject_v those_o error_n see_v here_o then_o all_o the_o condition_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o form_n of_o a_o true_a faith_n even_o in_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o most_o simple_a behold_v they_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o consequence_n behold_v the_o scripture_n remain_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n in_o spite_n of_o all_o the_o endeavour_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la it_o be_v in_o vain_a that_o he_o so_o strong_o oppose_v it_o it_o will_v always_o be_v what_o god_n have_v make_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o fountain_n and_o only_a source_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n or_o as_o st._n irenaeus_n speak_v the_o foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o only_o can_v give_v we_o quiet_a of_o mind_n and_o 1._o peace_n of_o conscience_n the_o difficulty_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la form_n against_o the_o scripture_n have_v these_o three_o character_n the_o one_o that_o they_o may_v be_v turn_v against_o himself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o as_o he_o have_v make_v they_o upon_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o may_v also_o make_v they_o upon_o the_o subject_n of_o tradition_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o which_o he_o will_v send_v we_o back_o the_o other_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v null_a and_o to_o no_o purpose_n and_o the_o three_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o tradition_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n they_o be_v solid_a and_o unconquerable_a and_o this_o be_v what_o will_v appear_v if_o what_o i_o have_v say_v in_o this_o and_o in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n be_v well_o examine_v the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o part._n a_o historical_a defence_n of_o the_o reformation_n against_o a_o book_n entitle_v just_o prejudices_fw-la against_o the_o calvinist_n the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o obligation_n and_o necessity_n that_o lie_v upon_o our_o father_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n chap._n i._n that_o our_o father_n have_v just_a sufficient_a and_o necessary_a cause_n for_o their_o separation_n suppose_v that_o they_o have_v right_a at_o the_o bottom_n in_o the_o controvert_v point_n we_o shall_v certain_o be_v the_o most_o ungrateful_a person_n in_o the_o world_n if_o after_o the_o favour_n that_o god_n have_v show_v we_o in_o re-establish_a the_o purity_n of_o his_o gospel_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o we_o we_o shall_v not_o think_v ourselves_o bind_v to_o give_v he_o everlasting_a thanks_o so_o great_a and_o precious_a a_o advantage_n high_o call_v for_o our_o resentment_n and_o that_o in_o enjoy_v it_o with_o delight_n we_o shall_v pay_v our_o acknowledgement_n to_o the_o author_n of_o it_o but_o what_o ground_n soever_o we_o shall_v have_v to_o rejoice_v in_o god_n we_o must_v notwithstanding_o avow_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v very_o insensible_a in_o regard_n of_o other_o if_o we_o can_v behold_v without_o a_o extreme_a affliction_n the_o misery_n of_o so_o many_o man_n who_o voluntary_o deprive_v themselves_o of_o that_o good_a those_o who_o be_v at_o present_a engage_v in_o those_o error_n and_o superstition_n from_o which_o it_o have_v please_v the_o divine_a goodness_n to_o deliver_v we_o be_v our_o brethren_n by_o the_o external_n profession_n of_o the_o christian_a name_n and_o by_o the_o consecration_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o baptism_n and_o how_o can_v we_o entire_o rejoice_v while_o we_o see_v they_o in_o a_o state_n which_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v so_o bad_a and_o so_o contrary_a to_o our_o common_a call_v i_o know_v that_o god_n only_o who_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o man_n heart_n and_o mind_n can_v dissipate_v that_o gloomy_a darkness_n which_o they_o be_v involve_v in_o and_o that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o pour_v out_o our_o ardent_a and_o continual_a prayer_n to_o he_o for_o his_o grace_n for_o they_o but_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o neglect_v humane_a method_n among_o which_o that_o of_o justify_v the_o conduct_n of_o our_o father_n in_o the_o subject_n of_o their_o separation_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o efficacious_a and_o as_o it_o be_v by_o that_o especial_o that_o they_o labour_v to_o render_v we_o odious_a so_o be_v to_o that_o that_o i_o shall_v allow_v the_o sequel_n of_o this_o work_n the_o separation_n of_o our_o father_n ought_v to_o be_v distinguish_v into_o three_o degree_n the_o first_o consist_v in_o that_o which_o they_o have_v loud_o pronounce_v against_o the_o doctrine_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o faith_n and_o piety_n and_o which_o they_o have_v formal_o renounce_v the_o second_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o external_n communion_n of_o that_o church_n and_o those_o of_o its_o party_n and_o the_o three_o in_o that_o they_o have_v make_v other_o assembly_n than_o she_o and_o that_o they_o have_v rank_v themselves_o under_o another_o form_n of_o ministry_n we_o have_v treat_v of_o the_o first_o already_o where_o we_o have_v show_v the_o justice_n and_o necessity_n of_o the_o reformation_n which_o our_o father_n make_v the_o three_o shall_v be_v speak_v to_o in_o the_o four_o part_n and_o this_o be_v design_v to_o examine_v the_o second_o our_o inquiry_n therefore_o at_o present_a will_v be_v to_o know_v whether_o our_o father_n in_o reform_v themselves_o aught_o to_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o other_o party_n who_o be_v not_o for_o a_o reformation_n or_o whither_o notwithstanding_o the_o reformation_n they_o ought_v yet_o to_o have_v abode_n with_o they_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o communion_n and_o to_o have_v live_v in_o that_o respect_n as_o they_o do_v heretofore_o this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o pretend_v to_o make_v clear_a in_o this_o three_o part_n of_o this_o work_n to_o enter_v upon_o this_o business_n i_o confess_v that_o if_o we_o can_v suppose_v it_o as_o a_o certainty_n that_o all_o separation_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v odious_a and_o criminal_a we_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o first_o in_o condemn_v the_o action_n of_o our_o father_n and_o that_o whatever_o aversion_n we_o shall_v have_v for_o the_o error_n and_o abuse_n which_o we_o see_v reign_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o ought_v to_o labour_v to_o bear_v they_o as_o patient_o as_o it_o can_v be_v possible_a for_o we_o to_o do_v in_o wait_v till_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n
go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o have_v cause_v a_o rupture_n of_o communion_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o these_o kind_n of_o thing_n that_o our_o father_n leave_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o have_v more_o sufficient_a more_o urgent_a and_o indispensable_a reason_n in_o the_o other_o controversy_n among_o which_o that_o of_o justification_n by_o meritorious_a work_n and_o by_o indulgence_n transubstantiation_n the_o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n religious_a worship_v of_o image_n humane_a satisfaction_n the_o lordship_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n over_o man_n conscience_n hold_v the_o chief_a place_n these_o be_v the_o true_a point_n which_o cause_v a_o separation_n and_o if_o the_o other_o contribute_v any_o thing_n to_o it_o it_o be_v only_o by_o the_o connexion_n which_o they_o have_v with_o these_o here_o or_o because_o they_o note_v a_o general_a spirit_n of_o superstition_n contrary_n to_o true_a piety_n or_o in_o fine_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o number_n for_o sometime_o divers_a both_o less_o dangerous_a each_o to_o a_o part_n all_o together_o make_v a_o mortal_a and_o incurable_a disease_n however_o it_o be_v it_o appear_v that_o our_o father_n have_v beside_o but_o too_o just_a and_o necessary_a reason_n of_o their_o separation_n but_o to_o come_v to_o set_v out_o this_o matter_n in_o its_o full_a evidence_n it_o will_v be_v requisite_a to_o see_v what_o they_o can_v say_v in_o opposition_n to_o what_o i_o have_v say_v it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o they_o can_v take_v but_o one_o of_o these_o three_o side_n 1._o either_o to_o deny_v that_o the_o transubstantiation_n adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n etc._n etc._n which_o we_o call_v error_n be_v so_o in_o effect_n or_o 2._o to_o say_v that_o even_o when_o they_o shall_v suppose_v that_o they_o be_v error_n they_o will_v not_o nevertheless_o take_v away_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o quality_n of_o a_o true_a church_n neither_o will_v they_o be_v incompatible_a with_o salvation_n and_o by_o consequence_n they_o can_v not_o be_v a_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o separation_n 3._o or_o in_o fine_a to_o maintain_v that_o even_o when_o these_o point_n shall_v be_v a_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o separation_n they_o can_v not_o be_v so_o at_o least_o in_o regard_n of_o our_o father_n because_o our_o father_n be_v by_o right_a subject_n to_o their_o ordinary_a pastor_n dependent_a upon_o their_o hierarchical_a government_n and_o chief_o upon_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o they_o pretend_v be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o and_o the_o centre_n of_o christian_a unity_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o can_v never_o separate_v themselves_o but_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o receive_v all_o the_o condition_n it_o require_v to_o be_v in_o its_o communion_n these_o be_v the_o only_a three_o thing_n in_o my_o judgement_n which_o they_o can_v propose_v with_o any_o colour_n i_o will_v examine_v the_o last_o in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n let_v we_o here_o consider_v these_o two_o other_o the_o first_o necessary_o engage_v the_o man_n who_o will_v make_v use_n of_o it_o to_o enter_v into_o a_o examination_n of_o the_o foundation_n of_o those_o matter_n or_o which_o come_v to_o the_o same_o thing_n solid_o to_o establish_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o that_o party_n that_o adhere_v to_o it_o which_o be_v a_o general_a controversy_n that_o include_v all_o the_o other_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o work_n and_o by_o consequence_n he_o must_v renounce_v all_o that_o wrangle_a dispute_n which_o go_v only_o upon_o prejudices_fw-la the_o justice_n or_o injustice_n of_o our_o separation_n will_v depend_v on_o the_o foundation_n for_o how_o can_v they_o assure_v themselves_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o call_v error_n and_o a_o false_a worship_n be_v on_o the_o contrary_a evangelical_n truth_n and_o a_o right_a and_o lawful_a worship_n without_o go_v on_o to_o that_o examination_n which_o show_v as_o i_o have_v already_o frequent_o observe_v that_o all_o those_o indirect_a attack_n which_o they_o assault_v we_o with_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o vain_a amusing_n and_o beat_n of_o the_o air_n which_o serve_v only_o to_o make_v a_o noise_n the_o second_o thing_n will_v not_o less_o engage_v they_o in_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o foundation_n of_o those_o matter_n than_o the_o first_o for_o in_o suppose_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o call_v error_n be_v such_o in_o effect_n they_o must_v necessary_o see_v of_o what_o nature_n they_o be_v and_o what_o opposition_n they_o have_v to_o true_a piety_n to_o judge_v aright_o whether_o they_o be_v sufficient_a cause_n for_o a_o separation_n and_o whether_o our_o conscience_n can_v accommodate_v itself_o to_o they_o i_o confess_v that_o this_o be_v no_o very_o hard_a matter_n to_o be_v know_v for_o how_o small_a a_o knowledge_n soever_o they_o may_v have_v of_o religion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n they_o may_v very_o easy_o perceive_v that_o if_o transubstantiation_n for_o example_n be_v a_o error_n they_o can_v but_o adore_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o room_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o if_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n be_v forbid_v by_o the_o second_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n they_o draw_v upon_o themselves_o the_o jealousy_n of_o god_n as_o he_o himself_o declare_v there_o they_o may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o if_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v not_o in_o effect_n a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n by_o which_o they_o may_v apply_v to_o themselves_o the_o virtue_n of_o that_o on_o the_o cross_n they_o do_v a_o injury_n to_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o they_o vain_o seek_v the_o virtue_n of_o it_o in_o a_o act_n where_o it_o be_v not_o apply_v they_o may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o if_o the_o lordship_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o its_o council_n usurp_v over_o man_n conscience_n be_v ill-grounded_a that_o they_o render_v unto_o man_n a_o kind_n of_o adoration_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o god_n alone_o which_o can_v but_o be_v a_o unpardonable_a crime_n in_o regard_n of_o he_o who_o have_v say_v thou_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o god_n before_o i_o but_o whether_o it_o will_v be_v a_o easy_a or_o a_o difficult_a matter_n to_o be_v know_v that_o be_v not_o the_o business_n about_o which_o we_o dispute_v at_o present_a it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o the_o separation_n of_o our_o father_n have_v just_a sufficient_a necessary_a and_o indisputable_a cause_n suppose_v that_o what_o they_o say_v of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v true_a and_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v accuse_v either_o of_o rashness_n or_o of_o schism_n without_o contest_v their_o supposition_n nor_o that_o they_o can_v contest_v their_o supposition_n without_o come_v to_o a_o inspection_n into_o the_o very_a thing_n themselves_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o that_o dispute_n which_o they_o raise_v against_o we_o about_o form_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a vain_a wrangle_n unworthy_a of_o any_o sound_a person_n if_o that_o which_o our_o father_n have_v lay_v down_o concern_v the_o error_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n force_n man_n to_o believe_v to_o be_v of_o her_o communion_n be_v not_o true_a we_o do_v not_o any_o further_o pretend_v to_o defend_v their_o separation_n but_o if_o it_o be_v true_a god_n and_o man_n will_v bear_v they_o witness_n that_o it_o be_v just_o do_v and_o according_a to_o the_o dictate_v of_o a_o upright_a conscience_n they_o will_v say_v it_o may_v be_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o upon_o such_o light_a ground_n to_o suppose_v that_o that_o which_o our_o father_n say_v concern_v the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v true_a since_o they_o be_v the_o point_n in_o dispute_n wherein_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_v that_o we_o be_v in_o a_o error_n as_o we_o pretend_v that_o she_o be_v but_o there_o can_v be_v any_o thing_n say_v more_o frivolous_a for_o the_o supposition_n that_o we_o make_v be_v in_o word_n of_o good_a sense_n and_o right_a reason_n because_o we_o make_v it_o to_o force_v our_o adversary_n to_o come_v to_o a_o discussion_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o upon_o which_o the_o judgement_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v make_v of_o our_o separation_n depend_v and_o to_o make_v they_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o those_o accusation_n which_o they_o form_n against_o our_o father_n that_o they_o have_v break_v the_o christian_a unity_n that_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o church_n that_o they_o have_v make_v a_o criminal_a schism_n be_v rash_a accusation_n unjust_a and_o precipitate_a since_o they_o can_v right_o
judge_v of_o their_o action_n either_o to_o condemn_v or_o absolve_v it_o until_o first_o of_o all_o they_o have_v examine_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o separation_n and_o the_o reason_n which_o they_o have_v allege_v which_o can_v never_o be_v do_v but_o by_o a_o discussion_n of_o the_o foundation_n in_o effect_n every_o accusation_n which_o have_v no_o certain_a foundation_n and_o which_o one_o must_v be_v compel_v to_o retract_v be_v precipitate_a and_o rash_a but_o that_o which_o they_o form_n against_o our_o father_n before_o their_o have_v examine_v the_o foundation_n be_v of_o that_o nature_n it_o have_v no_o certain_a foundation_n for_o they_o can_v know_v whether_o their_o action_n be_v just_a or_o unjust_a and_o they_o may_v be_v force_v to_o retract_v it_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v examine_v their_o reason_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o condemnable_a rashness_n in_o they_o who_o have_v a_o right_a to_o repel_v till_o they_o have_v make_v that_o examination_n and_o it_o be_v to_o oblige_v they_o to_o do_v it_o that_o we_o suppose_v that_o our_o father_n have_v right_a at_o the_o foundation_n chap._n ii_o that_o our_o father_n be_v bind_v to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o those_o who_o possess_v the_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n suppose_v that_o they_o have_v a_o right_a at_o the_o foundation_n but_o they_o will_v say_v whatsoever_o we_o shall_v pretend_v we_o can_v never_o do_v otherwise_o than_o condemn_v the_o separation_n of_o your_o father_n not_o for_o not_o have_v just_a ground_n of_o separation_n but_o because_o the_o right_n of_o separate_v one_o self_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v by_o a_o special_a privilege_n the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o we_o can_v never_o lawful_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o she_o and_o because_o it_o be_v on_o the_o contrary_a indispensable_o necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n to_o obey_v and_o to_o remain_v in_o her_o communion_n so_o that_o your_o father_n be_v on_o one_o side_n subject_a to_o their_o ordinary_a pastor_n they_o ought_v never_o to_o have_v divide_v themselves_o from_o their_o body_n for_o what_o cause_n soever_o there_o shall_v have_v be_v and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n and_o by_o consequence_n no_o salvation_n to_o be_v have_v otherwise_o than_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n it_o be_v a_o crime_n for_o any_o to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o it_o whatsoever_o pretence_n they_o can_v urge_v for_o that_o purpose_n this_o objection_n be_v found_v upon_o these_o two_o proposition_n the_o one_o that_o we_o never_o ought_v to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o her_o ordinary_a pastor_n and_o the_o other_o that_o we_o ought_v never_o to_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o particular_a as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o proposition_n i_o confess_v as_o i_o have_v say_v elsewhere_o that_o the_o people_n owe_v a_o great_a respect_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o pastor_n that_o administer_v to_o they_o the_o nourishment_n of_o their_o soul_n the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n according_a to_o the_o precept_n of_o st._n paul_n obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o you_o and_o submit_v yourselves_o for_o they_o watch_v for_o your_o soul_n this_o obedience_n ought_v to_o be_v 13._o accompany_v with_o a_o real_a esteem_n that_o shall_v make_v we_o to_o presume_v well_o of_o they_o which_o shall_v give_v we_o a_o readiness_n to_o be_v instruct_v by_o their_o word_n and_o be_v very_o remote_a from_o calumny_n murmur_n and_o rash_a suspicion_n found_v upon_o light_a appearance_n and_o that_o obedience_n that_o esteem_n that_o good_a opinion_n ought_v to_o be_v without_o doubt_n great_a for_o all_o the_o body_n in_o general_n than_o for_o particular_a man_n in_o it_o for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a probability_n that_o a_o whole_a body_n shall_v contain_v more_o light_n and_o by_o consequence_n more_o authority_n than_o each_o private_a man_n can_v have_v i_o say_v that_o when_o even_o vice_n be_v general_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o pastor_n the_o people_n ought_v to_o labour_v to_o bear_v they_o with_o patience_n and_o cover_v they_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v with_o charity_n in_o pray_v to_o god_n that_o it_o will_v please_v he_o to_o cleanse_v his_o sanctuary_n and_o to_o send_v good_a labourer_n into_o his_o harvest_n and_o howsoever_o it_o shall_v be_v while_o they_o can_v work_v out_o their_o salvation_n under_o their_o ministry_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o they_o but_o we_o ought_v not_o also_o to_o imagine_v that_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o people_n towards_o their_o ordinary_a pastor_n shall_v be_v without_o all_o bound_n or_o that_o their_o dependence_n on_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o measure_n that_o which_o we_o have_v say_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n touch_v the_o bond_n of_o church_n communion_n aught_o to_o be_v extend_v to_o the_o pastor_n and_o to_o the_o people_n their_o duty_n be_v mutual_a and_o there_o be_v none_o but_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o on_o who_o they_o can_v depend_v without_o condition_n to_o flatter_v the_o body_n of_o the_o pastor_n with_o that_o privilege_n be_v to_o set_v up_o man_n upon_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n to_o inspire_v they_o with_o pride_n vanity_n negligence_n it_o be_v to_o set_v up_o a_o lordship_n in_o the_o church_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v forbid_v and_o to_o give_v pastor_n the_o boldness_n to_o do_v and_o adventure_v upon_o all_o thing_n it_o be_v certain_a therefore_o that_o the_o tie_n which_o the_o faithful_a have_v to_o their_o ordinary_a pastor_n be_v limit_v and_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o endure_v but_o as_o far_o as_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o fidelity_n that_o we_o owe_v to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o own_o salvation_n can_v subsist_v with_o their_o government_n if_o it_o fall_v out_o so_o that_o their_o government_n can_v be_v any_o further_a compatible_a with_o those_o thing_n in_o that_o case_n they_o ought_v to_o separate_v and_o it_o will_v be_v to_o set_v up_o the_o most_o senseless_a wicked_a and_o profane_a proposition_n in_o the_o world_n to_o say_v the_o contrary_n the_o ministry_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v establish_v in_o the_o church_n only_o as_o a_o mere_a external_a mean_n to_o preserve_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n there_o and_o to_o lead_v man_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n teach_v we_o that_o when_o mere_a external_a mean_n shall_v be_v remote_a from_o their_o end_n and_o that_o instead_o of_o guide_v we_o to_o their_o end_n they_o turn_v we_o away_o from_o and_o deprive_v we_o of_o it_o that_o then_o the_o love_n which_o we_o have_v for_o the_o end_n aught_o to_o prevail_v over_o that_o which_o we_o may_v have_v for_o the_o mean_n because_o the_o mean_n be_v only_o desirable_a in_o reference_n to_o their_o end_n and_o the_o regard_n which_o we_o have_v for_o they_o be_v but_o a_o effect_n or_o a_o production_n of_o that_o which_o we_o have_v for_o the_o end_n so_o that_o when_o those_o who_o be_v wont_a to_o distribute_v to_o we_o aliment_v necessary_a to_o our_o life_n give_v we_o on_o the_o contrary_a poisonous_a meat_n instead_o of_o aliment_n and_o when_o they_o will_v force_v we_o to_o take_v they_o we_o must_v no_o long_o doubt_n that_o the_o interest_n of_o our_o life_n ought_v to_o take_v we_o off_o from_o that_o tie_n which_o we_o may_v have_v have_v to_o those_o person_n a_o guide_n be_v a_o mean_n to_o conduct_v we_o to_o the_o place_n whither_o we_o desire_v to_o go_v but_o when_o we_o know_v that_o that_o guide_n lead_v we_o in_o a_o false_a way_n and_o that_o instead_o of_o help_v we_o to_o go_v to_o that_o place_n he_o make_v we_o wander_v from_o it_o it_o be_v no_o question_n but_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o separate_v from_o he_o and_o renounce_v his_o conduct_n the_o ordinary_a pastor_n be_v guide_n man_n that_o ought_v to_o show_v we_o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n if_o therefore_o instead_o of_o show_v we_o they_o make_v we_o go_v a_o quite_o contrary_a way_n who_o can_v doubt_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o forsake_v they_o but_o they_o will_v say_v how_o can_v they_o be_v forsake_v without_o resist_a god_n himself_o who_o have_v subject_v they_o to_o they_o be_v not_o their_o ministry_n a_o divine_a institution_n and_o be_v it_o not_o jesus_n christ_n who_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o st._n paul_n have_v give_v some_o to_o be_v apostle_n 4._o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o assemble_v of_o the_o saint_n i_o answer_v that_o we_o must_v distinguish_v that_o which_o there_o be_v of_o divine_a in_o a_o ministry_n from_o that_o which_o there_o be_v
as_o heretic_n or_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n peace_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o constance_n reproach_v liberius_n that_o he_o be_v alone_o and_o that_o he_o oppose_v himself_o to_o all_o the_o world_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o athanasius_n when_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o 355._o world_n say_v he_o to_o he_o reside_v in_o thy_o person_n that_o thou_o alone_o shall_v take_v the_o part_n of_o a_o wicked_a man_n and_o dare_v to_o break_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o will_v be_v alone_o answer_v liberius_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v nevertheless_o weaken_a for_o heretofore_o there_o be_v but_o three_o find_v who_o resist_v the_o command_n of_o a_o king_n liberius_n himself_o be_v banish_v from_o which_o he_o be_v not_o free_v till_o after_o he_o subscribe_v to_o arianism_n and_o as_o the_o west_n be_v then_o less_o infect_v with_o this_o heresy_n than_o the_o east_n the_o emperor_n cause_v a_o council_n to_o assemble_v at_o ariminum_n in_o which_o after_o specious_a beginning_n the_o end_n be_v very_o unhappy_a for_o the_o bishop_n renounce_v therein_o the_o orthodox_n doctrine_n which_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n with_o his_o father_n to_o this_o effect_n they_o reject_v the_o word_n consubstantial_a which_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v insert_v into_o its_o creed_n as_o a_o word_n that_o be_v scandalous_a sacrilegious_a and_o unworthy_a of_o god_n which_o be_v no_o where_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o they_o banish_v it_o from_o the_o church_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o that_o synod_n itself_o to_o the_o emperor_n constance_n set_v down_o by_o s._n hilary_n in_o which_o they_o give_v the_o emperor_n thanks_o that_o he_o have_v show_v fragment_n they_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v to_o wit_n to_o decree_v that_o no_o body_n shall_v speak_v any_o more_o either_o of_o substance_n or_o of_o consubstantial_a which_o be_v name_n unknown_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o rejoice_v because_o they_o have_v acknowledge_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v hold_v before_o they_o add_v that_o the_o truth_n which_o can_v be_v overcome_v have_v obtain_v the_o victory_n so_o that_o that_o name_v unworthy_a of_o god_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v write_v in_o the_o sacred_a law_n shall_v not_o be_v for_o the_o future_a mention_v by_o any_o person_n and_o they_o declare_v that_o they_o entire_o hold_v the_o same_o doctrine_n with_o the_o oriental_a church_n and_o that_o they_o have_v render_v unto_o they_o and_o he_o a_o full_a obedience_n it_o be_v that_o reason_n for_o which_o auxentius_n bishop_n of_o milan_n arian_n a_o arian_n say_v in_o his_o letter_n to_o valentinian_n and_o valens_n emperor_n that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o endure_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o six_o hundred_o bishop_n shall_v be_v break_v by_o a_o small_a number_n of_o contentious_a person_n so_o that_o vincentius_n 6._o lirinensis_n make_v no_o scruple_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o poison_n of_o arianism_n have_v infect_v not_o some_o small_a part_n only_o but_o almost_o all_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v to_o that_o sense_n that_o phaebadius_n a_o french_a bishop_n 219._o who_o live_v in_o those_o time_n say_v that_o the_o subtlety_n and_o fraud_n of_o the_o devil_n have_v almost_o whole_o possess_a man_n mind_n that_o it_o persuade_v they_o to_o believe_v heresy_n as_o the_o right_a faith_n and_o condemn_v the_o true_a faith_n as_o a_o heresy_n and_o a_o little_a low_o have_v a_o eye_n to_o what_o have_v be_v do_v at_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n the_o bishop_n say_v he_o make_v a_o edict_n that_o no_o one_o shall_v mention_v one_o only_a substance_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o no_o one_o shall_v preach_v in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v but_o one_o only_a virtue_n i_o may_v add_v to_o these_o testimony_n that_o of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n in_o the_o oration_n that_o he_o make_v in_o the_o praise_n of_o s._n athanasius_n there_o after_o have_v describe_v the_o fury_n of_o george_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o a_o arian_n and_o the_o impiety_n of_o the_o council_n of_o seleucia_n he_o add_v we_o may_v see_v one_o sort_n unjust_o banish_v from_o their_o see_v and_o other_o put_v 21._o into_o their_o place_n after_o their_o have_v subscribe_v to_o the_o impiety_n which_o be_v require_v of_o they_o as_o a_o necessary_a condition_n plot_v never_o cease_v on_o one_o side_n nor_o the_o calumniator_n on_o the_o other_o this_o be_v that_o which_o have_v make_v many_o among_o we_o fall_v into_o the_o snare_n who_o be_v else_o invincible_a for_o although_o their_o error_n do_v not_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o seduce_v their_o mind_n yet_o they_o subscribe_v notwithstanding_o and_o by_o that_o mean_v conspire_v with_o the_o most_o wicked_a man_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o partaker_n in_o their_o flame_n they_o be_v at_o least_o blacken_v with_o their_o smoke_n this_o be_v that_o which_o have_v make_v i_o often_o pour_v forth_o river_n of_o tear_n behold_v wickedness_n spread_v abroad_o so_o wide_a and_o so_o much_o every_o where_o and_o that_o those_o themselves_o that_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v the_o defender_n of_o the_o word_n there_o have_v become_v the_o persecutor_n of_o the_o orthodox_n doctrine_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pastor_n have_v be_v carry_v away_o after_o a_o insensible_a manner_n and_o to_o speak_v with_o the_o scripture_n divers_a pastor_n have_v leave_v my_o vineyard_n desolate_a they_o have_v abuse_v and_o load_v that_o desirable_a portion_n with_o shame_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o the_o sweat_n and_o blood_n of_o so_o many_o martyr_n before_o and_o since_o the_o come_n of_o jesus_fw-la christ_n have_v besprinkle_v and_o which_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o suffering_n of_o god_n himself_o who_o die_v for_o our_o salvation_n if_o you_o except_v some_o few_o who_o have_v either_o be_v despise_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o obscurity_n of_o their_o name_n or_o who_o have_v resist_v by_o their_o virtue_n for_o it_o be_v very_o requisite_a that_o there_o shall_v yet_o have_v some_o remain_v to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o seed_n and_o a_o root_n to_o israel_n to_o make_v it_o flourish_v and_o revive_v again_o all_o be_v sway_v by_o the_o time_n there_o be_v only_o this_o difference_n among_o they_o that_o some_o be_v fall_v deep_a into_o the_o snare_n and_o other_o more_o slow_o that_o some_o be_v the_o chief_a in_o wickedness_n and_o other_o hold_v the_o second_o place_n cardinal_n baronius_n can_v not_o avoid_v make_v this_o reflection_n in_o set_v 359._o down_o this_o passage_n so_o it_o be_v that_o gregory_n deplore_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o whole_a eastern_a church_n but_o if_o we_o will_v add_v the_o ruin_n that_o befall_v the_o western_a church_n which_o i_o have_v just_a before_o describe_v we_o shall_v easy_o judge_v that_o there_o have_v not_o be_v any_o time_n since_o wherein_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n have_v be_v more_o disturb_v than_o it_o be_v then_o since_o almost_o all_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o church_n be_v fall_v into_o the_o precipice_n and_o that_o the_o face_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v never_o so_o dreadful_a but_o the_o second_o action_n which_o we_o have_v propound_v be_v not_o less_o certain_a than_o the_o former_a to_o wit_n that_o those_o among_o the_o orthodox_n who_o have_v any_o zeal_n or_o courage_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o their_o ordinary_a pastor_n and_o will_v not_o own_v they_o for_o their_o pastor_n while_o they_o remain_v in_o heresy_n in_o effect_n that_o be_v the_o chief_a cause_n for_o which_o they_o suffer_v so_o many_o murder_n and_o banishment_n the_o arian_n no_n way_n tolerate_v those_o who_o refuse_v their_o communion_n the_o perpetual_a accusation_n wherewith_o they_o charge_v they_o be_v that_o they_o be_v the_o schismatic_n who_o have_v violate_v the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v that_o which_o auxentius_n reproach_v s._n hilary_n with_o and_o eusebius_n of_o verceille_n in_o the_o letter_n which_o i_o have_v before_o cite_v they_o be_v say_v he_o man_n condemn_v and_o depose_v who_o think_v of_o nothing_o but_o make_v of_o schism_n wheresoever_o they_o come_v for_o so_o it_o be_v that_o that_o false_a bishop_n call_v the_o just_a separation_n to_o which_o s._n hilary_n exhort_v the_o faithful_a by_o his_o write_n as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o precede_a chapter_n socrates_n the_o ecclesiastical_a historian_n relate_v upon_o this_o subject_n 30._o that_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o arian_n proceed_v to_o that_o height_n that_o they_o force_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o unjust_a way_n man_n and_o woman_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n at_o their_o hand_n
hinder_v but_o that_o she_o may_v external_o deny_v the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o that_o she_o may_v entire_o lose_v her_o love_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o separate_v from_o she_o while_o she_o shall_v be_v in_o that_o state_n and_o till_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o re-establish_a she_o see_v here_o of_o what_o force_n those_o proof_n be_v which_o they_o produce_v to_o ground_v this_o special_a privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n upon_o it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o see_v that_o a_o man_n of_o good_a understanding_n who_o will_v satisfy_v his_o mind_n and_o his_o conscience_n upon_o so_o weighty_a a_o point_n ought_v not_o to_o remain_v there_o but_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o pass_v on_o to_o the_o other_o way_n of_o clear_v that_o doubt_n which_o i_o have_v note_v which_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o pretention_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o examination_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o her_o worship_n for_o it_o be_v there_o principal_o that_o the_o character_n of_o truth_n and_o infallibility_n ought_v to_o be_v find_v and_o by_o consequence_n he_o must_v come_v to_o the_o foundation_n and_o no_o further_o amuse_v himself_o with_o prejudices_fw-la as_o to_o the_o second_o way_n by_o which_o i_o have_v say_v we_o may_v clear_v this_o question_n whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o christian_n to_o be_v join_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o consist_v in_o examine_v whether_o it_o be_v true_a that_o god_n have_v make_v she_o the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o particular_a order_n that_o bind_v we_o indispensable_o to_o she_o for_o if_o that_o be_v so_o the_o separation_n of_o our_o father_n must_v be_v condemn_v but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o we_o must_v judge_v of_o that_o church_n as_o of_o all_o other_o particular_a church_n and_o say_v that_o we_o can_v and_o ought_v not_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o she_o but_o when_o we_o have_v just_a and_o lawful_a cause_n so_o to_o do_v there_o be_v no_o person_n who_o do_v not_o judge_n that_o we_o can_v pass_v over_o light_o a_o point_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n which_o ought_v to_o serve_v for_o a_o general_a and_o perpetual_a rule_n to_o all_o christian_n and_o that_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v so_o set_v herself_o beyond_o a_o state_n of_o equality_n above_o other_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o she_o shall_v produce_v some_o very_a express_a and_o indisputable_a order_n of_o god_n for_o it_o but_o instead_o of_o that_o she_o do_v nothing_o but_o reverberate_v the_o same_o passage_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v she_o boast_v herself_o to_o be_v the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n and_o under_o that_o pretence_n she_o apply_v to_o herself_o all_o that_o she_o can_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o favour_n of_o that_o apostle_n and_o particular_o the_o order_n that_o jesus_n christ_n give_v he_o to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n as_o if_o the_o office_n of_o the_o apostleship_n in_o which_o jesus_n christ_n reestablish_v he_o by_o those_o word_n can_v be_v communicate_v to_o his_o successor_n or_o as_o if_o the_o foundation_n that_o jesus_n christ_n suppose_v and_o upon_o which_o he_o reestablish_v he_o in_o say_v to_o he_o feed_v my_o sheep_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o shall_v love_v he_o more_o than_o the_o rest_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n pure_o personal_a in_o s._n peter_n and_o whereof_o it_o be_v not_o in_o his_o power_n to_o transmit_v any_o part_n to_o his_o successor_n nor_o by_o consequence_n to_o invest_v they_o with_o his_o office_n which_o be_v restore_v to_o he_o only_o upon_o a_o supposition_n of_o that_o love_n or_o last_o as_o if_o the_o office_n of_o feed_v christ_n sheep_n include_v a_o absolute_a and_o indispensable_a necessity_n for_o the_o sheep_n to_o receive_v their_o death_n when_o they_o shall_v give_v it_o they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o their_o food_n it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o there_o never_o be_v a_o high_a pretention_n than_o this_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o what_o more_o can_v she_o pretend_v to_o then_o to_o make_v heaven_n itself_o depend_v on_o her_o communion_n and_o to_o leave_v no_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o any_o but_o those_o who_o shall_v be_v in_o her_o communion_n and_o under_o her_o dependence_n but_o it_o must_v also_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o there_o never_o be_v any_o thing_n worse_o establish_v than_o that_o pretention_n they_o allege_v in_o its_o favour_n nothing_o that_o be_v clear_a and_o distinct_a and_o even_o the_o consequence_n which_o they_o draw_v for_o it_o be_v make_v after_o a_o very_a strange_a manner_n this_o be_v in_o my_o judgement_n the_o reason_n why_o our_o adversary_n when_o they_o treat_v of_o this_o matter_n do_v not_o insist_v much_o upon_o scripture_n but_o fly_v off_o present_o to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o usage_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o by_o this_o mean_n they_o hope_v to_o prolong_v the_o dispute_n to_o eternity_n and_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v always_o in_o possession_n of_o that_o despotical_a authority_n which_o she_o exercise_v over_o the_o church_n that_o remain_v in_o her_o communion_n in_o effect_n the_o life_n of_o a_o man_n will_v scarce_o suffice_v to_o read_v well_o and_o thorough_o examine_v all_o the_o volume_n which_o have_v be_v compose_v on_o one_o side_n and_o on_o the_o other_o upon_o this_o question_n of_o the_o place_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o its_o bishop_n have_v hold_v among_o the_o christian_a church_n during_o the_o first_o six_o century_n and_o of_o the_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v then_o but_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n there_o be_v too_o much_o artifice_n in_o that_o procedure_n for_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o and_o that_o no_o one_o can_v be_v save_v but_o in_o her_o communion_n that_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o order_n of_o man_n but_o only_o on_o that_o of_o god_n and_o when_o they_o shall_v find_v among_o the_o ancient_n a_o thousand_o time_n more_o complaisance_n for_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n than_o they_o have_v that_o may_v very_o well_o establish_v a_o ancient_a possession_n and_o make_v clear_a the_o fact_n but_o it_o can_v never_o establish_v the_o right_n of_o it_o to_o establish_v a_o right_n of_o that_o nature_n a_o word_n of_o god_n a_o express_a declaration_n of_o his_o will_n be_v necessary_a for_o it_o be_v a_o right_a not_o only_o above_o nature_n but_o even_o above_o the_o ordinary_a and_o common_a favour_n that_o god_n give_v to_o other_o church_n and_o which_o by_o consequence_n depend_v only_o upon_o god_n and_o so_o it_o be_v but_o a_o wander_a from_o the_o way_n to_o go_v to_o search_v for_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o in_o the_o write_n of_o men._n it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o conceive_v that_o those_o bishop_n which_o be_v raise_v to_o dignity_n in_o the_o metropolis_n of_o the_o world_n and_o engage_v in_o the_o great_a affair_n may_v manage_v matter_n so_o as_o to_o ascribe_v to_o themselves_o those_o right_n which_o no_o way_n belong_v to_o they_o nor_o to_o imagine_v that_o their_o flatterer_n and_o courtier_n may_v not_o have_v offer_v more_o incense_n to_o they_o than_o they_o ought_v nor_o that_o those_o persecute_a one_o who_o have_v recourse_n to_o their_o protection_n may_v not_o have_v help_v the_o increase_n of_o their_o authority_n nor_o that_o the_o prince_n and_o emperor_n who_o have_v need_n of_o they_o may_v not_o have_v give_v they_o those_o privilege_n which_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v have_v that_o which_o render_v to_o a_o just_a title_n all_o that_o which_o they_o allege_v in_o their_o favour_n suspect_v and_o to_o no_o purpose_n at_o all_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v moreover_o evident_a matter_n of_o fact_n that_o let_v we_o clear_o see_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o universal_a episcopacy_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n pretend_v to_o nor_o that_o absolute_a and_o indispensable_a necessity_n to_o be_v join_v to_o their_o see_v to_o be_v save_v nor_o that_o their_o church_n shall_v be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n 1._o every_o one_o know_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v ancient_o choose_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n and_o of_o the_o clergy_n of_o that_o church_n without_o any_o other_o church_n take_v part_n in_o those_o election_n which_o be_v a_o mark_n manifest_a enough_o that_o they_o do_v not_o mean_a that_o those_o bishop_n shall_v be_v universal_a bishop_n nor_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o more_o peculiar_a interest_n in_o their_o creation_n than_o
of_o it_o but_o they_o will_v have_v subordinate_a head_n humane_a head_n on_o who_o they_o may_v depend_v by_o a_o external_a dependence_n and_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o be_v by_o that_o mean_v link_v to_o jesus_n christ_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o they_o will_v have_v we_o at_o this_o day_n to_o depend_v on_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n wherefore_o do_v s._n paul_n say_v to_o they_o be_v christ_n divide_v why_o do_v he_o not_o say_v to_o they_o that_o as_o for_o paul_n and_o apollo_n they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o take_v they_o for_o their_o head_n but_o that_o it_o be_v far_o otherwise_o as_o to_o peter_n since_o god_n have_v set_v up_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n for_o ever_o to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n why_o in_o stead_n of_o that_o do_v he_o conclude_v after_o this_o manner_n that_o no_o one_o shall_v glory_v in_o man_n for_o 23._o all_o thing_n be_v you_o whether_o paul_n or_o apollo_n or_o cephas_n or_o the_o world_n or_o life_n or_o death_n or_o thing_n present_a or_o thing_n to_o come_v all_o be_v you_o and_o you_o be_v christ_n and_o christ_n be_v god_n be_v it_o not_o to_o let_v they_o understand_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o there_o be_v only_o his_o communion_n that_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a and_o that_o as_o for_o other_o minister_n whosoever_o they_o be_v they_o be_v appoint_v for_o our_o use_n as_o all_o other_o thing_n to_o serve_v we_o in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o lead_v we_o to_o jesus_n christ_n if_o the_o church_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n aught_o to_o be_v inviolable_o tie_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n how_o shall_v the_o scripture_n have_v be_v silent_a in_o so_o weighty_a a_o truth_n which_o can_v not_o be_v ignore_v without_o extreme_a danger_n nor_o contest_v without_o evident_a damnation_n notwithstanding_o we_o do_v not_o find_v any_o other_o head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o sacred_a book_n but_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o any_o other_o high_a priest_n but_o he_o we_o do_v not_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n any_o universal_a bishop_n nor_o ministerial_a head_n or_o subordinate_a or_o any_o particular_a church_n the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o we_o find_v there_o indeed_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v ascend_v up_o on_o high_a give_v some_o to_o be_v apostle_n other_o to_o be_v prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n 4._o and_o teacher_n for_o the_o assemble_v of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n how_o come_v the_o apostle_n to_o forget_v in_o that_o enumeration_n the_o chief_a of_o all_o office_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o the_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o the_o universal_a vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o government_n and_o conduct_n of_o his_o flock_n if_o the_o christian_a church_n ought_v in_o that_o to_o resemble_v the_o synagogue_n and_o to_o have_v as_o that_o a_o sovereign_n high_a priest_n upon_o earth_n who_o shall_v be_v the_o head_n of_o that_o religion_n and_o who_o shall_v have_v his_o successor_n as_o the_o ancient_a high_a priest_n have_v whence_o come_v it_o that_o the_o scripture_n have_v always_o regard_v that_o ancient_a high_a priest_n as_o a_o figure_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o it_o always_o refer_v it_o to_o he_o and_o never_o to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n nor_o even_o to_o s._n peter_n who_o be_v then_o alive_a and_o who_o shall_v by_o consequence_n have_v exercise_v that_o pretend_a charge_n which_o they_o will_v make_v to_o descend_v from_o he_o there_o be_v therefore_o no_o lawful_a foundation_n in_o all_o that_o pretention_n of_o rome_n and_o her_o see_n we_o ought_v to_o pass_v the_o same_o judgement_n on_o all_o other_o see_v and_o other_o particular_a church_n with_o which_o it_o be_v just_a we_o shall_v hold_v communion_n while_o they_o teach_v good_a and_o sound_a doctrine_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v even_o bear_v with_o they_o when_o they_o shall_v fall_v into_o some_o error_n provide_v they_o constrain_v no_o body_n to_o believe_v they_o but_o from_o which_o it_o be_v also_o just_a to_o separate_v ourselves_o when_o they_o shall_v fall_v into_o error_n contrary_a to_o the_o communion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o only_a saviour_n and_o when_o they_o will_v violent_o force_v all_o other_o to_o believe_v the_o same_o if_o in_o a_o long_a course_n of_o age_n rome_n have_v usurp_v by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o right_n that_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o she_o if_o she_o have_v find_v it_o very_o easy_a through_o the_o ignorance_n or_o complaisance_n of_o man_n in_o the_o diverse_a intrigue_n of_o the_o world_n to_o raise_v her_o throne_n as_o high_a as_o our_o father_n behold_v it_o and_o as_o we_o do_v yet_o at_o this_o day_n if_o her_o flatterer_n have_v not_o fail_v always_o to_o raise_v her_o pretension_n as_o high_a as_o heaven_n and_o if_o she_o have_v be_v lull_v asleep_o with_o the_o sound_n of_o those_o sweet_a charm_n that_o enchant_v she_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o that_o ought_v to_o prejudice_v our_o separation_n we_o have_v no_o other_o aversion_n for_o her_o communion_n than_o that_o which_o our_o conscience_n give_v we_o and_o if_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o re-establish_a she_o in_o her_o ancient_a purity_n she_o will_v not_o have_v so_o great_a a_o joy_n to_o spread_v forth_o her_o arm_n to_o we_o as_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o impatience_n to_o demand_v her_o peace_n of_o she_o but_o as_o long_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v she_o in_o that_o bad_a state_n wherein_o we_o be_v persuade_v she_o be_v we_o can_v but_o bewail_v and_o pray_v for_o she_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o no_o body_n can_v blame_v we_o for_o prefer_v our_o own_o salvation_n to_o her_o communion_n chap._n iii_o that_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o those_o of_o her_o party_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o protestant_n have_v give_v they_o a_o just_a cause_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o they_o suppose_v that_o they_o have_v have_v right_o at_o the_o foundation_n before_o we_o leave_v this_o matter_n of_o our_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o yet_o remain_v two_o question_n for_o we_o to_o examine_v the_o one_o whether_o our_o father_n be_v not_o too_o precipitate_a in_o so_o great_a a_o affair_n whether_o they_o do_v not_o act_v with_o too_o much_o haste_n or_o whether_o they_o have_v sufficient_a motive_n from_o the_o conduct_n of_o those_o from_o who_o they_o separate_v to_o forsake_v in_o the_o end_n their_o communion_n the_o other_o whether_o with_o all_o that_o they_o can_v say_v that_o they_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o the_o donatist_n do_v heretofore_o and_o whether_o they_o do_v not_o fall_v into_o the_o same_o crime_n with_o those_o ancient_a schismatic_n against_o who_o optatus_n and_o s._n augustine_n so_o strong_o dispute_v i_o will_v treat_v of_o this_o second_o question_n in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n and_o this_o here_o shall_v be_v design_v to_o the_o clear_n of_o the_o former_a to_o effect_v this_o methinks_v we_o need_v but_o free_o to_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n all_o that_o i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o second_o part_n touch_v the_o necessity_n that_o lie_v upon_o our_o father_n to_o reform_v themselves_o for_o since_o it_o clear_o result_v from_o those_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o those_o of_o their_o party_n be_v so_o far_o from_o apply_v themselves_o serious_o to_o a_o reformation_n that_o they_o study_v on_o the_o contrary_a only_o how_o to_o stifle_v the_o truth_n from_o the_o very_a first_o moment_n they_o behold_v it_o appear_v and_o to_o defend_v their_o error_n and_o superstition_n by_o all_o manner_n of_o way_n who_o see_v not_o that_o that_o inflexible_a resolution_n which_o have_v not_o yield_v either_o to_o the_o first_o or_o second_o admonition_n render_v from_o that_o time_n the_o separation_n of_o our_o father_n just_a and_o exempt_v they_o from_o all_o reproach_n for_o when_o there_o be_v error_n capable_a of_o give_v ground_n for_o a_o separation_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v defer_v only_o upon_o a_o hope_n of_o amendment_n and_o that_o hope_v seem_v to_o be_v sufficient_o destroy_v by_o those_o historical_a action_n which_o i_o have_v already_o set_v down_o notwithstanding_o to_o show_v they_o more_o and_o more_o how_o the_o conduct_n of_o our_o father_n be_v very_o prudent_a in_o that_o respect_n and_o full_a of_o circumspection_n it_o will_v not_o be_v beside_o our_o purpose_n to_o resume_v here_o the_o close_a of_o their_o story_n from_o the_o unjust_a condemnation_n of_o luther_n and_o his_o doctrine_n make_v by_o pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o
the_o external_n state_n of_o that_o religion_n itself_o have_v in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o father_n sign_n of_o its_o corruption_n sufficient_a to_o afford_v they_o just_a motive_n to_o examine_v it_o page_z 23._o chap._n iu._n that_o such_o a_o corruption_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n as_o our_o father_n have_v conceive_v be_v no_o way_n a_o impossible_a thing_n page_n 37._o chap._n v._n more_o particular_a reflection_n upon_o that_o privilege_n of_o infallibility_n which_o they_o ascribe_v to_o the_o church_n and_o of_o its_o authority_n page_n 45._o chap._n vi_o a_o examination_n of_o the_o proof_n which_o they_o produce_v to_o establish_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church-of_a rome_n page_n 54._o chap._n vii_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n have_v not_o any_o right_a to_o bind_v our_o father_n to_o yield_v a_o blind_a obedience_n to_o they_o or_o to_o hinder_v they_o from_o examine_v their_o doctrine_n page_n 75._o chap._n viii_o a_o further_a examination_n of_o that_o authority_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o that_o absolute_a obedience_n which_o they_o pretend_v aught_o to_o be_v give_v they_o page_n 85._o chap._n ix_o an_fw-mi examen_fw-la of_o those_o reason_n they_o allege_v to_o establish_v that_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o prelate_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n page_n 109._o the_o second_o part._n of_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o reformation_n chap._n i._o that_o our_o father_n can_v not_o expect_v a_o reformation_n either_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o from_o those_o of_o the_o prelate_n page_n 125._o chap._n ii_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n from_o the_o history_n of_o that_o which_o pass_v in_o the_o first_o quarrel_n of_o luther_n with_o the_o conrt_n of_o rome_n concern_v indulgence_n page_n 142._o chap._n iii_o that_o our_o father_n not_o be_v able_a any_o more_o to_o hope_v for_o a_o reformation_n on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o prelate_n be_v indispensable_o bind_v to_o provide_v for_o their_o own_o salvation_n and_o to_o reform_v themselves_o page_n 156._o chap._n iu._n that_o our_o father_n have_v a_o lawful_a and_o sufficient_a call_n to_o reform_v themselves_o and_o to_o labour_v to_o reform_v other_o page_n 166._o chap._n v._o a_o answer_n to_o the_o objection_n that_o be_v make_v against_o the_o person_n of_o the_o reformer_n page_n 177._o chap._n vi_o a_o further_a justification_n of_o the_o first_o reformer_n against_o the_o objection_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la contain_v in_o his_o ten_o and_o eleven_o chapter_n page_n 196._o chap._n vii_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o twelve_o and_o thirteen_o chapter_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la page_n 222._o chap._n viii_o that_o our_o father_n in_o their_o design_n of_o reform_v themselves_o be_v bind_v to_o take_v the_o holy_a scripture_n alone_o for_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n page_n 241_o chap._n ix_o a_o examination_n of_o the_o objection_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la make_v against_o the_o scripture_n page_n 260._o the_o three_o part._n of_o the_o obligation_n and_o necessity_n that_o lay-upon_a our_o father_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n chap._n i._o that_o our_o father_n have_v just_a sufficient_a and_o necessary_a cause_n for_o their_o separation_n suppose_v that_o they_o have_v right_o at_o the_o bottom_n in_o the_o controvert_v point_n page_n 1._o chap._n ii_o that_o our_o father_n be_v bind_v to_o separate_a themselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o those_o who_o possess_v the_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n suppose_v that_o they_o have_v a_o right_n at_o the_o foundation_n page_n 15._o chap._n iii_o that_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o those_o of_o her_o party_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o protestant_n have_v give_v they_o a_o just_a cause_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o they_o suppose_v that_o they_o have_v right_o at_o the_o foundation_n page_n 53._o chap._n iu._n a_o examination_n of_o the_o objection_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la take_v out_o of_o the_o dispute_n of_o saint_n augustine_n against_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n page_n 79._o chap._n v._o a_o further_a examination_n of_o the_o reason_v of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la upon_o the_o subject_a of_o our_o separation_n page_n 113._o the_o four_o part._n of_o the_o right_n that_o our_o father_n have_v to_o hold_v a_o christian_a society_n among_o themselves_o by_o public_a assembly_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o ministry_n chap._n 1._o that_o our_o father_n have_v a_o right_a to_o have_v their_o church-assembly_n separate_v from_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n on_o the_o supposition_n that_o they_o be_v right_a in_o the_o foundation_n page_n 1._o chap._n ii_o that_o the_o society_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v not_o a_o new_a cburch_n page_n 28._o chap._n iii_o that_o the_o ministry_n exercise_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v lawful_a and_o that_o the_o call_v of_o their_o minister_n be_v so_o also_o page_n 48._o chap._n iu._n a_o answer_n to_o the_o objection_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la about_o the_o call_v of_o the_o first_o reformer_n and_o the_o validity_n of_o our_o baptism_n p._n 84_o the_o end_n of_o the_o content_n of_o the_o chapter_n advertisement_n there_o be_v new_o publish_v a_o book_n entitle_v ☞_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o a_o treatise_n wherein_o you_o have_v 1._o the_o divine_a auhtority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n prove_v by_o undeniable_a demonstration_n and_o the_o cavil_n of_o objector_n confute_v 2._o a_o continuation_n of_o the_o metaphor_n allegory_n and_o express_v similitude_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n gradual_o expound_v parallel_n wise_a with_o short_a inference_n from_o each_o 3._o sacred_a phylologie_n viz._n the_o scheme_n and_o figure_n in_o sriipture_n reduce_v under_o their_o proper_a head_n with_o a_o brief_a explication_n of_o the_o most_o obscure_a 4._o a_o treatise_n of_o the_o type_n parable_n and_o allegory_n in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n 5._o plain_a and_o evident_a demonstration_n that_o by_o the_o great_a whore_n mystery_n babylon_n be_v mean_v the_o papal_a hierarchy_n or_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n the_o whole_a work_n be_v partly_o compile_v and_o partly_o translate_v from_o the_o work_v of_o many_o learned_a and_o orthodox_n writer_n ancient_a and_o modern_a complete_n what_o be_v intend_v by_o the_o undertaker_n in_o order_n to_o explain_v that_o difficult_a part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v encourage_v and_o recommend_v by_o divers_a worthy_a minister_n of_o london_n as_o useful_a for_o all_o student_n in_o sacred_a writ_n sell_v by_o john_n hancock_n at_o the_o three_o bibles_n over_o against_o the_o royal_a exchange_n in_o cornhill_n and_o benj._n alsop_n at_o the_o angel_n and_o bible_n in_o the_o poultry_n over-against_o the_o compter_n cassander_n consult_v art_n de_fw-fr eccles_n luke_n 22._o 25_o 26._o 1_o pet._n 5._o bernard_n in_o cant._n serm._n 77._o item_n serm._n 33._o nicol_n cusan_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr concord_n cath._n c._n 29._o 1_o tim._n 6._o 10_o 3._o col._n 5._o nicolaus_n de_fw-fr clemangis_fw-la de_fw-fr corrupto_fw-la statit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la bernard_n de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la evangel_n dixit_fw-la simon_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 1000_o marsil_n de_fw-fr pad_n defence_n pacis_fw-la part_n 2._o cap._n 20._o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n book_n 6._o in_o the_o instruction_n and_o missive_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n for_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o the_o same_o instruction_n and_o missive_n distinct._n 96._o canon_n 7._o aug._n steuchus_n de_fw-fr fall_v donat._n constantini_n froissard_n tom._n 3._o fol._n 147._o angel_n politian_n orat._n pro_fw-la sen._n ad_fw-la alexand_n sextum_fw-la raynald_n ad_fw-la ann._n 1492._o ss_z 27._o decretal_a greg._n lib._n 1._o tit_n 7._o can._n quanto_fw-la in_fw-la glossa_fw-la itinerar_fw-it ital._n part_n 2._o the_o coron_n rom._n pontif._n raynald_n ad_fw-la ann._n 1162._o baron_fw-fr ad_fw-la ann._n 1162._o council_n lateran_n sess_z 7._o &_o 9_o in_o orat._n paulus_n jovius_n in_o philippo_n 3_o 3_o renvoy_fw-fr signify_v proper_o a_o simple_a dismission_n grant_v to_o one_o that_o be_v appeal_v or_o call_v before_o a_o superior_a judge_n require_v to_o be_v dismiss_v to_o the_o prosecute_n of_o his_o suit_n already_o begin_v before_o the_o inferior_a his_o ordinary_n judge_n platina_n in_o vit_fw-mi sexto_fw-la decret_a do_fw-mi 2._o cap._n 1._o sext._n decret_a extravag_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr major_a &_o ob_v cap._n 1._o baron_fw-fr ad_fw-la ann._n 1076._o platin._n in_o vit_fw-mi bonif._n 8._o joan._n gerson_n de_fw-fr eccles._n potest_fw-la consid_n 10._o decretal_a gregor_n lib._n 3._o tit_n 8._o cap._n 4._o decret_n part_n 2._o caus_n 25._o quest_n 1._o canon_n 6._o ad_fw-la gloss_n bernard_n epist_n 42._o
they_o and_o will_v shed_v abroad_o his_o blessing_n upon_o your_o care_n as_o far_o as_o shall_v be_v necessary_a for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o people_n in_o who_o favour_n you_o labour_n and_o he_o himself_o will_n one_o day_n give_v you_o a_o reward_n for_o all_o those_o toilsome_a labour_n although_o you_o do_v not_o need_v to_o be_v excite_v to_o do_v good_a yet_o i_o take_v the_o confidence_n to_o hope_v that_o you_o will_v be_v some_o way_n encourage_v in_o the_o duty_n of_o your_o place_n by_o the_o read_n of_o this_o work_n which_o will_v more_o and_o more_o discover_v to_o you_o the_o justice_n of_o it_o you_o will_v see_v therein_o the_o conduct_n of_o our_o father_n justify_v in_o regard_n of_o their_o reformation_n and_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o consequence_n you_o will_v therein_o see_v not_o only_o the_o right_n that_o we_o have_v but_o the_o obligation_n and_o indispensable_a necessity_n also_o wherein_o we_o be_v to_o live_v apart_o and_o divide_v from_o that_o church_n and_o unite_v among_o ourselves_o in_o a_o religious_a and_o christian_a society_n till_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o make_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o division_n cease_v and_o join_v again_o that_o which_o man_n i_o will_v say_v what_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o her_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v put_v asunder_o that_o reunion_n be_v a_o happiness_n that_o we_o will_v always_o beg_v of_o god_n with_o the_o most_o ardent_a prayer_n and_o which_o we_o will_v receive_v as_o one_o of_o his_o high_a favour_n if_o his_o hand_n shall_v bestow_v it_o but_o it_o be_v also_o a_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o we_o to_o promise_v ourselves_o while_o we_o shall_v not_o see_v the_o same_o desire_n of_o a_o good_a and_o holy_a reformation_n which_o be_v almost_o general_a in_o our_o west_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n to_o be_v again_o revive_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o yet_o they_o know_v how_o to_o stifle_v with_o incredible_a skill_n a_o author_n of_o those_o time_n who_o himself_o contribute_v as_o much_o as_o any_o other_o to_o clude_v the_o good_a effect_n of_o that_o desire_n have_v not_o fail_v to_o own_o it_o and_o which_o be_v more_o to_o own_v it_o to_o be_v just_a i_o do_v not_o deny_v say_v he_o eccles_n that_o many_o at_o the_o beginning_n be_v not_o urge_v by_o a_o motion_n of_o piety_n earnest_o to_o cry_v out_o against_o some_o manifest_a abuse_n and_o i_o confess_v that_o we_o must_v attribute_v the_o chief_a cause_n of_o that_o division_n that_o at_o present_a rent_n the_o church_n to_o those_o who_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o a_o vain_a pride_n under_o a_o pretence_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n contemn_v and_o haughty_o and_o disdainful_o reject_v those_o who_o admonish_v they_o with_o reason_n and_o modesty_n and_o immediate_o after_o that_o same_o author_n reason_v about_o the_o mean_n to_o re-establish_a a_o holy_a peace_n between_o the_o two_o party_n i_o do_v not_o believe_v add_v he_o that_o we_o ought_v ever_o to_o hope_v for_o a_o firm_a peace_n in_o the_o church_n if_o those_o who_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o dis-union_n do_v not_o begin_v by_o themselves_o that_o be_v to_o say_v unless_o those_o who_o have_v the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n in_o their_o hand_n relax_v a_o little_a of_o that_o great_a rigour_n and_o contribute_v something_o to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o unless_o in_o harken_v to_o the_o ardent_a prayer_n and_o exhortation_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o good_a man_n they_o apply_v themselves_o to_o reform_v those_o manifest_a abuse_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n from_o which_o they_o have_v wander_v after_o this_o manner_n a_o man_n engage_v in_o the_o communion_n and_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n speak_v even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n he_o will_v indeed_o after_o that_o have_v we_o also_o who_o he_o accuse_v to_o have_v go_v too_o far_o in_o the_o other_o extreme_a yield_v something_o on_o our_o side_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v return_v as_o he_o speak_v to_o ourselves_o but_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v think_v strange_a that_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o he_o be_v will_v lenify_v by_o that_o corrective_a the_o confession_n that_o he_o make_v before_o and_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o we_o that_o he_o have_v own_v the_o force_n of_o the_o evil_a and_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o true_a and_o only_a remedy_n god_n who_o hold_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o in_o his_o hand_n kindle_v in_o they_o the_o love_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o give_v we_o all_o the_o grace_n to_o look_v to_o the_o blood_n that_o have_v ransom_v the_o church_n and_o that_o first_o spirit_n who_o consecrate_v it_o to_o one_o only_a jesus_n christ_n her_o lord_n and_o husband_n for_o it_o be_v he_o only_o who_o can_v reunite_v we_o without_o i_o sate_z he_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o and_o he_o that_o gather_v not_o with_o i_o scatter_v abroad_o i_o pray_v that_o the_o same_o god_n who_o have_v give_v you_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o gospel_n will_v make_v you_o persevere_v in_o it_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o will_v confirm_v his_o love_n and_o fear_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o my_o lord_n your_o child_n who_o already_o so_o well_o answer_v the_o honour_n of_o their_o birth_n and_o the_o care_v you_o have_v take_v for_o their_o education_n and_o last_o that_o he_o will_v more_v and_o more_o shed_v abroad_o his_o blessing_n over_o your_o person_n and_o over_o all_o your_o house_n this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o desire_v from_o the_o bottom_n of_o my_o heart_n and_o that_o you_o will_v do_v i_o the_o favour_n to_o believe_v that_o i_o be_o my_o lord_n your_o lordship_n most_o humble_a and_o most_o obedient_a servant_n claude_fw-la the_o attestation_n we_o who_o name_n be_v underwritten_a certify_v that_o we_o have_v read_v the_o answer_n of_o monsieur_n claude_n our_o most_o honour_a colleague_n to_o a_o book_n entitle_v the_o prejudices_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o which_o we_o have_v find_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o religion_n which_o we_o profess_v sign_v at_o paris_n the_o nine_o and_o twenty_o of_o november_n 1672._o daille_n '_o mesnard_n the_o reader_n be_v desire_v to_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o word_n historical_n in_o the_o running-title_n be_v insert_v without_o the_o translator_n knowledge_n or_o consent_n a_o historical_a defence_n of_o the_o reformation_n against_o a_o book_n entitle_v just_o prejudices_fw-la against_o the_o calvinist_n the_o first_o part_n wherein_o it_o be_v show_v that_o our_o ancestor_n be_v oblige_v to_o examine_v by_o themselves_o the_o state_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n chap._n i._n general_a consideration_n upon_o this_o controversy_n the_o division_n of_o this_o treatise_n it_o be_v not_o difficult_a to_o understand_v why_o those_o who_o be_v possess_v of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o western_a church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n and_o those_o who_o have_v since_o succeed_v they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v think_v themselves_o so_o much_o concern_v to_o oppose_v the_o reformation_n it_o will_v oblige_v they_o to_o strip_v themselves_o of_o that_o sovereign_n and_o and_o absolute_a authority_n which_o they_o have_v usurp_v and_o by_o which_o they_o have_v dispose_v the_o conscience_n of_o man_n to_o their_o will_n and_o it_o will_v force_v they_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o that_o public_a management_n which_o they_o hold_v in_o their_o hand_n and_o no_o person_n be_v ignorant_a that_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o all_o other_o in_o the_o world_n most_o intolerable_a to_o those_o person_n who_o have_v make_v a_o secular_a empire_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n as_o those_o interest_n have_v make_v they_o lay_v hold_v of_o all_o they_o can_v to_o defend_v themselves_o so_o they_o have_v raise_v a_o new_a controversy_n touch_v the_o right_a that_o our_o father_n have_v to_o reform_v themselves_o they_o demand_v of_o we_o who_o our_o reformer_n be_v from_o whence_o they_o come_v and_o what_o call_v they_o have_v for_o so_o great_a a_o work_n they_o accuse_v they_o to_o have_v be_v rebel_n and_o schismatic_n who_o lift_v themselves_o up_o against_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o mother_n the_o church_n and_o break_v the_o sacred_a bond_n of_o the_o christian_a communion_n they_o have_v defame_v their_o person_n as_o much_o as_o ever_o they_o can_v and_o have_v lay_v to_o their_o charge_n the_o most_o wicked_a manner_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v render_v they_o odious_a in_o fine_a they_o have_v put_v forward_o all_o that_o they_o can_v believe_v capable_a of_o retain_v the_o people_n in_o a_o blind_a
respect_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o the_o legate_n himself_o in_o particular_a but_o cajetan_n without_o be_v willing_a to_o hear_v he_o speak_v of_o his_o justification_n shut_v up_o all_o with_o this_o that_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n that_o he_o shall_v revoke_v his_o error_n under_o pain_n of_o incur_v the_o censure_n with_o which_o he_o have_v receive_v order_n to_o punish_v he_o add_v that_o if_o he_o will_v not_o recant_v he_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v but_o to_o withdraw_v himself_o and_o to_o come_v no_o more_o before_o he_o luther_n withdraw_v from_o the_o legate_n house_n and_o have_v be_v advertise_v some_o day_n after_o that_o they_o endeavour_v to_o imprison_v he_o notwithstanding_o the_o safe_a conduct_n of_o the_o emperor_n he_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o auspurg_n not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o have_v befall_v john_n hus_n and_o jerome_n of_o prague_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n before_o his_o departure_n he_o write_v to_o cajetan_a two_o very_a submissive_a 1._o letter_n in_o one_o of_o which_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o have_v not_o in_o treat_v of_o that_o business_n of_o the_o indulgence_n preserve_v all_o that_o respect_n which_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v have_v for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o howsoever_o he_o have_v be_v urge_v by_o the_o carriage_n of_o his_o adversary_n he_o confess_v that_o nevertheless_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v handle_v that_o matter_n with_o more_o modesty_n humility_n and_o respect_n that_o if_o he_o have_v any_o way_n displease_v he_o he_o beg_v his_o pardon_n offer_v to_o publish_v it_o himself_o and_o to_o use_v civil_a term_n for_o the_o future_a he_o offer_v likewise_o not_o to_o speak_v any_o more_o from_o thence_o forward_o of_o indulgence_n provide_v he_o impose_v silence_n on_o the_o questor_n also_o or_o oblige_v they_o to_o observe_v the_o same_o measure_n in_o their_o discourse_n and_o as_o to_o the_o recantation_n which_o they_o require_v of_o he_o he_o protest_v that_o he_o have_v do_v it_o in_o good_a earnest_n if_o his_o conscience_n have_v allow_v he_o to_o have_v do_v it_o but_o that_o there_o be_v no_o command_n nor_o counsel_n nor_o consideration_n of_o any_o person_n in_o the_o world_n that_o can_v make_v he_o say_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n against_o his_o conscience_n in_o the_o second_o letter_n observe_v all_o along_o the_o same_o submissive_a and_o respectful_a style_n he_o declare_v to_o he_o that_o he_o have_v withdraw_v himself_o from_o auspurg_n and_o beg_v that_o he_o will_v not_o think_v the_o worse_a of_o he_o if_o he_o appeal_v from_o he_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o send_v he_o his_o act_n of_o appeal_n that_o appeal_n be_v found_v 1._o upon_o this_o that_o he_o have_v not_o determine_v any_o thing_n upon_o the_o point_n of_o indulgence_n but_o that_o he_o have_v only_o propose_v some_o thesis_n to_o be_v dispute_v on_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o school_n 2._o that_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o doctor_n as_o well_o canonist_n as_o divine_n be_v very_o different_a and_o there_o be_v nothing_o define_v for_o certain_a in_o the_o church_n upon_o that_o subject_n he_o have_v have_v right_a to_o choose_v one_o side_n to_o choose_v one_o side_n to_o maintain_v in_o the_o dispute_n much_o more_o when_o he_o be_v urge_v to_o it_o by_o the_o indiscretion_n of_o the_o questor_n who_o under_o a_o pretence_n of_o those_o indulgence_n have_v dishonour_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n by_o their_o detestable_a covetousness_n and_o scandalous_a conduct_n seduce_v the_o people_n unto_o new_a opinion_n and_o sell_v justify_v grace_n for_o money_n 3._o that_o he_o have_v not_o only_o submit_v his_o disputation_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n but_o even_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o man_n more_o learned_a than_o himself_o and_o in_o particular_a to_o pope_n leo._n from_o whence_o he_o conclude_v that_o he_o have_v have_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o cite_v he_o that_o nevertheless_o he_o have_v offer_v to_o his_o legate_n to_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o the_o university_n of_o basil_n of_o friburg_n of_o louvain_n and_o of_o paris_n which_o his_o legate_n will_v not_o accept_v that_o he_o will_v not_o let_v he_o see_v wherein_o his_o error_n lay_v but_o that_o he_o have_v only_o press_v he_o mere_o to_o recant_v threaten_v he_o if_o he_o do_v not_o or_o if_o he_o do_v not_o go_v to_o rome_n he_o will_v excommunicate_v he_o and_o all_o who_o adhere_v to_o he_o howsoever_o that_o he_o have_v always_o protest_v that_o he_o have_v not_o any_o opinion_n but_o what_o be_v found_v on_o the_o scripture_n on_o the_o father_n and_o the_o canon_n that_o therefore_o find_v himself_o oppress_v by_o that_o whole_a proceed_n he_o appeal_v from_o the_o legate_n and_o from_o all_o that_o the_o pope_n through_o ill_a information_n have_v do_v against_o he_o to_o the_o pope_n himself_o better_v inform_v notwithstanding_o he_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o auspurg_n and_o by_o his_o retreat_n render_v vain_a and_o ineffectual_a all_o the_o conspiracy_n they_o have_v contrive_v against_o his_o person_n to_o make_v he_o a_o prisoner_n cajetan_n have_v fail_v of_o his_o intent_n write_v to_o frederick_n duke_n of_o saxony_n against_o luther_n accuse_v he_o as_o guilty_a of_o a_o heinous_a crime_n in_o that_o he_o will_v not_o recant_v and_o further_o exhort_v and_o require_v that_o prince_n either_o to_o send_v he_o to_o rome_n or_o to_o drive_v he_o out_o of_o his_o territory_n luther_n very_o solid_o justify_v himself_o before_o his_o prince_n and_o make_v he_o see_v the_o oppression_n and_o most_o evident_a tyranny_n that_o they_o use_v against_o he_o and_o because_o that_o the_o cardinal_n have_v formal_o declare_v in_o his_o letter_n to_o frederick_n that_o so_o weighty_a and_o pestilentious_a a_o affair_n can_v not_o remain_v a_o long_a time_n in_o that_o condition_n and_o that_o the_o cause_n shall_v be_v carry_v on_o at_o rome_n that_o menace_v oblige_v luther_n to_o make_v a_o act_n of_o appeal_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o from_o all_o his_o proceed_n against_o he_o to_o a_o council_n lawful_o call_v at_o the_o same_o time_n almost_o leo_n send_v a_o bull_n into_o germany_n confirm_v his_o indulgence_n and_o the_o doctrine_n upon_o which_o they_o be_v ground_v that_o doctrine_n be_v that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n give_v to_o saint_n peter_n and_o to_o his_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o right_a to_o pardon_v to_o the_o faithful_a all_o the_o guilt_n and_o punishment_n of_o their_o actual_a sin_n to_o wit_n the_o guilt_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n and_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n by_o mean_n of_o indulgence_n whether_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o purgatory_n and_o that_o by_o those_o indulgence_n he_o can_v apply_v to_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a the_o superabundance_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o saint_n either_o by_o way_n of_o absolution_n or_o by_o way_n of_o suffrage_n so_o that_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a participate_v of_o those_o indulgence_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o punishment_n that_o the_o divine_a justice_n will_v inslict_v on_o they_o for_o their_o actual_a sin_n he_o command_v therein_o all_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n from_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v absolve_v till_o the_o point_n of_o death_n to_o believe_v it_o also_o and_o to_o the_o end_n no_o person_n may_v allege_v ignorance_n he_o give_v order_n to_o all_o arch-bishop_n and_o bishop_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o holy_a obedience_n to_o cause_v his_o bull_n to_o be_v publish_v in_o all_o their_o church_n give_v nevertheless_o power_n to_o his_o legate_n to_o proceed_v against_o the_o disobedient_a and_o to_o punish_v they_o as_o he_o shall_v think_v fit_a behold_v here_o the_o true_a history_n of_o the_o first_o quarrel_n of_o rome_n with_o luther_n let_v they_o judge_v now_o whether_o our_o father_n under_o who_o eye_n all_o that_o business_n past_a can_v any_o more_o hope_n for_o a_o reformation_n either_o from_o the_o pope_n hand_n or_o his_o prelate_n instead_o of_o make_v a_o holy_a and_o christian_a reflection_n upon_o the_o just_a complaint_n of_o this_o man_n how_o mean_a and_o contemptible_a soever_o he_o may_v appear_v to_o they_o they_o think_v of_o nothing_o but_o keep_v up_o that_o evil_a which_o they_o do_v then_o in_o publish_v their_o indulgence_n which_o they_o know_v have_v not_o any_o foundation_n either_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o think_v of_o nothing_o but_o how_o to_o protect_v they_o and_o indirect_o to_o forbid_v those_o scandalous_a and_o wicked_a excess_n of_o their_o
and_o which_o the_o donatist_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v orthodox_n be_v then_o actual_o and_o in_o effect_n spread_v over_o the_o whole_a earth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o have_v a_o great_a extent_n among_o the_o nation_n of_o it_o whereas_o that_o of_o the_o donatist_n be_v shut_v up_o within_o one_o small_a part_n of_o africa_n it_o be_v upon_o this_o that_o they_o abuse_v a_o passage_n of_o the_o canticle_n which_o they_o read_v after_o this_o manner_n tell_v 7._o i_o o_o thou_o who_o my_o soul_n love_v where_o thou_o feed_v where_o thou_o make_v thy_o flock_n to_o rest_v in_o the_o south_n explain_v this_o in_o the_o south_n as_o if_o he_o will_v have_v note_v the_o place_n and_o say_v in_o africa_n whereas_o it_o shall_v be_v read_v at_o noonday_n mere_o to_o note_v the_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n 14._o when_o the_o shepherd_n lead_v his_o flock_n under_o some_o shade_n for_o their_o rest_n this_o be_v that_o which_o make_v s._n augustine_n also_o speak_v to_o they_o sometime_o of_o the_o apostolical_a church_n and_o those_o to_o who_o s._n john_n write_v his_o apocalypse_n with_o who_o they_o have_v no_o communion_n and_o to_o reproach_v they_o so_o often_o for_o be_v separate_v from_o all_o the_o world_n the_o three_o observation_n be_v that_o that_o society_n which_o the_o donatist_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v orthodox_n and_o which_o be_v in_o effect_n spread_v over_o many_o nation_n have_v not_o cut_v off_o the_o donatist_n from_o its_o communion_n nor_o have_v separate_v the_o former_a from_o it_o if_o they_o have_v not_o excommunicate_v they_o nor_o pronounce_v anathema_n against_o those_o who_o shall_v not_o hold_v cecilianus_n to_o be_v innocent_a or_o the_o traditor_n to_o have_v be_v good_a man_n when_o any_o one_o of_o they_o return_v to_o the_o church_n they_o do_v not_o seek_v to_o make_v they_o renounce_v any_o other_o thing_n than_o their_o schism_n nor_o to_o embrace_v any_o thing_n beside_o peace_n and_o even_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o rome_n milciades_n 162_o and_o his_o brethren_n offer_v to_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o bishop_n that_o majorinus_n have_v ordain_v and_o in_o the_o conference_n at_o carthage_n they_o offer_v to_o the_o donatist_n bishop_n to_o own_v they_o for_o 16._o bishop_n and_o to_o preserve_v their_o see_v to_o they_o without_o require_v any_o other_o condition_n of_o they_o than_o that_o of_o brotherly_a unity_n it_o be_v therefore_o the_o donatist_n who_o separate_v themselves_o wilful_o out_o of_o a_o mere_a spirit_n of_o division_n and_o the_o church_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o they_o in_o a_o passive_a separation_n last_o the_o four_o observation_n be_v that_o although_o the_o donatist_n shall_v have_v have_v any_o just_a occasion_n to_o separate_v yet_o they_o have_v urge_v their_o separation_n notwithstanding_o as_o far_o as_o it_o can_v go_v for_o they_o have_v carry_v it_o so_o far_o as_o even_o to_o break_v that_o general_a bond_n which_o yet_o in_o some_o manner_n unite_v all_o those_o who_o make_v a_o external_a profession_n of_o christianity_n good_a and_o bad_a orthodox_n and_o heretic_n which_o yet_o in_o some_o manner_n make_v but_o one_o body_n in_o opposition_n to_o pagan_n and_o other_o people_n absolute_o infidel_n their_o principle_n be_v that_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n except_o the_o party_n of_o donatus_n be_v sully_v with_o the_o contagion_n of_o the_o traditor_n cecilianus_n all_o that_o they_o have_v also_o do_v become_v sully_v by_o the_o uncleanness_n of_o their_o person_n and_o upon_o this_o principle_n they_o condemn_v the_o christianity_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n they_o reject_v her_o baptism_n and_o her_o sacrament_n although_o at_o the_o bottom_n they_o have_v the_o same_o with_o she_o and_o they_o look_v upon_o that_o society_n to_o be_v no_o otherwise_o than_o a_o assembly_n of_o pagan_n and_o infidel_n with_o who_o they_o will_v have_v nothing_o common_a this_o be_v what_o st._n augustine_n reproach_n 3._o they_o with_o in_o divers_a place_n in_o his_o write_n they_o say_v say_v he_o that_o they_o be_v christian_n but_o they_o say_v also_o that_o they_o only_o be_v so_o they_o make_v no_o scruple_n to_o say_v that_o they_o know_v that_o out_o of_o their_o sect_n there_o be_v no_o christian_n you_o hold_v say_v he_o to_o they_o elsewhere_o that_o all_o christian_a holiness_n have_v be_v abolish_v among_o the_o nation_n where_o the_o apostle_n have_v establish_v it_o because_o they_o have_v communicate_v with_o those_o who_o your_o father_n condemn_v in_o their_o council_n of_o carthage_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o they_o think_v themselves_o grievous_o affront_v when_o the_o catholic_n call_v they_o their_o brethren_n they_o flee_v from_o their_o communion_n they_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o sit_v together_o with_o they_o and_o they_o rebaptised_a all_o those_o who_o have_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o church_n when_o they_o come_v over_o to_o their_o communion_n neither_o more_o or_o less_o than_o if_o they_o have_v come_v out_o of_o paganism_n because_o they_o maintain_v that_o in_o effect_n the_o church_n be_v absolute_o perish_v throughout_o all_o the_o earth_n except_o in_o their_o party_n these_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n that_o i_o have_v think_v myself_o bind_v to_o explain_v we_o must_v now_o return_v to_o the_o objection_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la and_o examine_v it_o in_o the_o meaning_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o african_a father_n the_o proposition_n of_o which_o it_o be_v compose_v the_o first_o be_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n from_o which_o it_o be_v never_o 102._o allow_v any_o man_n to_o separate_v himself_o under_o what_o pretence_n soever_o and_o from_o which_o all_o those_o who_o do_v so_o separate_v themselves_o be_v schismatic_n this_o first_o proposition_n be_v ambiguous_a and_o so_o confuse_a that_o we_o can_v very_o hardly_o comprehend_v in_o what_o sense_n the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v mean_v it_o every_o one_o know_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n a_o body_n of_o people_n or_o of_o nation_n who_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n and_o to_o who_o one_o may_v yet_o in_o some_o manner_n give_v the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n because_o that_o all_o such_o christian_n be_v yet_o in_o some_o respect_n within_o the_o general_n call_v of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v therefore_o this_o church_n of_o which_o he_o mean_v to_o speak_v but_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o to_o accuse_v we_o of_o schism_n he_o shall_v have_v form_v so_o vagous_n a_o idea_n of_o the_o church_n since_o he_o know_v very_o well_o that_o we_o be_v no_o more_o separate_v from_o this_o body_n than_o the_o other_o communion_n that_o compose_v it_o be_v or_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n herself_o in_o particular_a be_v every_o one_o know_v that_o this_o body_n of_o christian_n be_v divide_v into_o divers_a communion_n or_o particular_a society_n that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o church_n as_o the_o greek_a the_o roman_a the_o protestant_n the_o coptick_n the_o jacobite_n the_o nestorian_a the_o armenian_a do_v he_o mean_v any_o one_o of_o these_o church_n but_o if_o that_o be_v so_o why_o do_v he_o not_o distinct_o and_o without_o any_o hesitation_n tell_v we_o which_o it_o be_v and_o if_o he_o will_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v that_o of_o rome_n what_o ground_n be_v there_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v have_v it_o so_o why_o do_v he_o not_o explain_v himself_o why_o do_v he_o make_v a_o end_n even_o to_o say_v that_o 177._o it_o shall_v be_v in_o our_o choice_n whether_o that_o church_n shall_v be_v the_o greek_a or_o the_o nestorian_a or_o the_o jacobite_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o determine_v it_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v all_o these_o go_n about_o every_o one_o know_v yet_o that_o god_n always_o preserve_v in_o the_o world_n his_o true_o faithful_a and_o his_o child_n who_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o he_o have_v predestinate_v to_o eternal_a salvation_n but_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v former_o declare_v himself_o against_o this_o notion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o be_v so_o very_a earnest_n to_o reject_v it_o that_o we_o can_v impute_v it_o to_o he_o without_o do_v he_o wrong_n we_o can_v even_o believe_v that_o he_o mean_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o a_o communion_n when_o it_o be_v orthodox_n and_o when_o those_o who_o separate_v themselves_o from_o it_o be_v schismatic_n for_o he_o have_v also_o declare_v himself_o against_o this_o notion_n of_o the_o church_n because_o say_v he_o 174._o in_o take_v this_o way_n the_o examination_n of_o schism_n will_v be_v remit_v to_o that_o of_o the_o opinion_n and_o that_o we_o must_v always_o know_v whether_o the_o communion_n that_o they_o forsake_v be_v orthodox_n
shall_v be_v shake_v because_o many_o in_o who_o grace_n seem_v to_o be_v resplendent_a shall_v yield_v to_o the_o persecutor_n and_o some_o of_o the_o most_o firm_a among_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v trouble_v the_o church_n say_v he_o shall_v not_o appear_v ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la apparebit_fw-la she_o will_v not_o therefore_o have_v then_o that_o visible_a extension_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la will_v have_v to_o be_v her_o perpetual_a mark_n for_o all_o age_n he_o further_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o vincentius_n where_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o 48._o arian_n there_o he_o teach_v in_o express_a term_n that_o the_o church_n be_v sometime_o obscure_v and_o cover_v with_o cloud_n through_o the_o great_a number_n of_o offence_n that_o she_o be_v then_o only_o eminent_a in_o she_o most_o firm_a defender_n while_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o weak_a and_o carnal_a be_v overwhelm_v with_o the_o flood_n of_o temptation_n that_o under_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o arian_n the_o simple_a suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v deceive_v that_o other_o yield_v through_o fear_n dissemble_v and_o in_o appearance_n consent_v to_o arianism_n that_o indeed_o some_o of_o the_o most_o firm_a escape_v the_o snare_n of_o those_o heretic_n but_o that_o they_o be_v but_o few_o in_o number_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o rest_n that_o nevertheless_o some_o of_o they_o generous_o suffer_v banishment_n and_o some_o other_o lay_v hide_v here_o and_o there_o throughout_o the_o earth_n i_o pray_v tell_v i_o what_o visible_a extension_n can_v the_o orthodox_n communion_n have_v then_o which_o subsist_v only_o in_o a_o small_a number_n of_o the_o firm_a of_o who_o even_o the_o great_a part_n have_v suffer_v exile_n or_o lay_v hide_v here_o and_o there_o throughout_o all_o the_o earth_n i_o confess_v that_o history_n note_n that_o there_o be_v yet_o some_o small_a flock_n in_o some_o place_n of_o the_o east_n and_o of_o the_o west_n who_o set_v up_o their_o assembly_n apart_o as_o at_o edessa_n at_o nazianzen_n at_o antioch_n and_o in_o some_o province_n of_o france_n and_o germany_n but_o what_o be_v this_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o arian_n communion_n which_o have_v fill_v the_o church_n and_o hold_v council_n as_o we_o have_v so_o often_o prove_v we_o must_v therefore_o serious_o profess_v that_o this_o visible_a extension_n be_v a_o vain_a and_o deceitful_a mark_n when_o they_o will_v make_v it_o perpetual_a to_o the_o true_a church_n as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la will_v make_v it_o and_o that_o no_o one_o can_v abuse_v with_o great_a injustice_n the_o authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n than_o he_o have_v do_v we_o must_v profess_v also_o that_o a_o small_a handful_n of_o the_o faithful_a a_o little_a party_n have_v right_a to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o whole_a multitude_n i_o mean_v from_o a_o communion_n spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n which_o have_v on_o its_o side_n the_o ministry_n the_o pulpit_n the_o council_n the_o school_n title_n dignity_n and_o all_o that_o retinue_n of_o temporal_a splendour_n when_o it_o have_v not_o the_o true_a faith_n for_o the_o rest_n that_o which_o i_o have_v handle_v in_o this_o chapter_n about_o the_o two_o former_a proposition_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la already_o sufficient_o let_v we_o see_v the_o falseness_n of_o his_o argument_n for_o if_o he_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v this_o chapter_n with_o never_o so_o little_a application_n he_o will_v see_v all_o these_o follow_a proposition_n well_o establish_v there_o 1._o that_o in_o general_n this_o author_n have_v not_o comprise_v the_o true_a hypothesis_n of_o s._n augustine_n nor_o the_o state_n of_o his_o dispute_n against_o the_o donatist_n 2._o that_o he_o can_v draw_v no_o advantage_n from_o the_o divers_a way_n in_o which_o that_o father_n conceive_v the_o word_n church_n 3._o that_o the_o separation_n which_o that_o father_n judge_v to_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v condemn_v and_o wicked_a under_o what_o pretence_n soever_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v be_v whole_o different_a from_o that_o which_o be_v between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o 4._o that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o christian_a society_n from_o which_o one_o may_v not_o lawful_o separate_a one_o self_n in_o a_o certain_a case_n and_o manner_n 5._o that_o that_o which_o be_v dispute_v between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o be_v of_o this_o number_n they_o must_v consider_v the_o cause_n and_o circumstance_n of_o it_o right_o to_o judge_v of_o it_o and_o not_o pretend_v to_o convince_v we_o of_o schism_n without_o enter_v upon_o any_o other_o discussion_n 6._o that_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o s._n augustine_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v schismatical_a in_o respect_n of_o we_o suppose_v that_o she_o be_v in_o error_n because_o it_o be_v she_o that_o have_v break_v christian_a unity_n and_o that_o we_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o she_o in_o a_o passive_a separation_n 7._o that_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o make_v that_o visible_a extension_n a_o perpetual_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o way_n soever_o they_o take_v it_o 8._o that_o this_o pretend_a mark_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o experience_n of_o our_o age_n and_o do_v not_o proper_o agree_v to_o any_o one_o of_o these_o society_n that_o at_o this_o day_n divide_v christianity_n 9_o that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o age_n past_a and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n 10._o that_o it_o be_v reject_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la by_o the_o famous_a doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n 11._o that_o it_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o the_o dispute_n of_o s._n augustine_n against_o the_o donatist_n 12._o that_o it_o be_v even_o direct_o opposite_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o father_n these_o be_v the_o just_a and_o natural_a consequence_n that_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v handle_v in_o this_o chapter_n i_o will_v examine_v in_o the_o follow_a the_o other_o proposition_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la chap._n v._n a_o further_a examination_n of_o the_o reason_v of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la upon_o the_o subject_n of_o our_o separation_n the_o three_o proposition_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la be_v already_o sufficient_o confute_v by_o what_o i_o have_v say_v he_o say_v that_o since_o our_o society_n be_v not_o visible_o extend_v throughout_o all_o nation_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o we_o have_v show_v he_o that_o we_o can_v at_o this_o day_n rational_o attribute_v that_o visible_a extension_n throughout_o all_o nation_n to_o any_o of_o the_o society_n that_o divide_v christianity_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o it_o be_v a_o chimerical_a mark_n by_o which_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n since_o there_o be_v none_o which_o be_v not_o visible_o exclude_v from_o many_o nation_n we_o have_v show_v he_o also_o that_o his_o pretend_a mark_n do_v not_o agree_v either_o with_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o age_n past_a nor_o with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n nor_o even_o with_o that_o of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o instead_o of_o have_v any_o foundation_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n augustine_n it_o be_v evident_o contrary_a to_o he_o so_o that_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v at_o present_a but_o to_o go_v on_o to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o four_o and_o five_o proposition_n they_o bear_v this_o sense_n that_o the_o calvinist_n urge_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o donatist_n far_o high_a than_o ever_o those_o schismatic_n do_v for_o as_o for_o they_o they_o do_v not_o say_v that_o there_o be_v any_o time_n wherein_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v fall_v into_o apostasy_n and_o they_o except_v the_o communion_n of_o donatus_n whereas_o the_o calvinist_n will_v have_v it_o that_o there_o have_v be_v whole_a age_n wherein_o all_o the_o earth_n have_v general_o apostatise_v and_o lose_v the_o faith_n and_o treasure_n of_o salvation_n that_o the_o society_n of_o the_o berengarian_o the_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o some_o of_o we_o include_v the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v that_o catholic_n church_n whereof_o s._n augustine_n speak_v to_o establish_v that_o which_o he_o lay_v to_o our_o charge_n concern_v the_o entire_a extinction_n of_o the_o church_n he_o first_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o calvin_n this_o be_v say_v he_o that_o which_o calvin_n have_v distinct_o etc._n declare_v in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n where_o after_o have_v pretend_v that_o the_o threaten_a that_o s._n paul_n use_v against_o those_o who_o do_v not_o remain_v in_o
contest_v and_o when_o we_o allege_v to_o you_o the_o body_n of_o the_o pastor_n extension_n multitude_n and_o the_o other_o advantage_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o own_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n be_v false_a or_o that_o its_o worship_n be_v corrupt_v or_o to_o conclude_v that_o those_o advantage_n alone_o will_v give_v it_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o true_a church_n though_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v orthodox_n but_o we_o pretend_v only_o that_o set_v aside_o the_o discussion_n of_o doctrine_n we_o can_v convince_v you_o of_o schism_n by_o those_o prejudices_fw-la alone_o which_o without_o any_o further_a examination_n mark_v out_o which_o of_o the_o two_o communion_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o by_o consequence_n which_o be_v false_a and_o schismatical_a i_o have_v already_o answer_v divers_a time_n this_o objection_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v revive_v here_o further_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o reader_n i_o shall_v not_o fail_v to_o show_v yet_o far_o the_o vanity_n of_o it_o and_o to_o discover_v more_o and_o more_o on_o which_o side_n the_o fallacy_n lie_v i_o say_v then_o that_o when_o i_o suppose_v in_o this_o dispute_n that_o we_o have_v right_o at_o the_o bottom_n my_o supposition_n be_v just_a and_o within_o the_o rule_n of_o good_a reason_n for_o i_o do_v not_o suppose_v it_o either_o as_o a_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v nor_o as_o a_o thing_n grant_v to_o i_o but_o as_o a_o matter_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v examine_v and_o on_o the_o examination_n of_o which_o that_o question_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o true_a church_n ought_v necessary_o to_o depend_v we_o will_v say_v they_o show_v you_o without_o enter_v into_o the_o discussion_n of_o the_o doctrine_n by_o mere_a prejudices_fw-la that_o you_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n and_o that_o you_o have_v no_o right_a to_o be_v in_o a_o society_n nor_o to_o gather_v assembly_n and_o as_o for_o i_o i_o pretend_v to_o show_v that_o that_o way_n be_v illusory_a and_o sophistical_a and_o that_o one_o ought_v to_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n in_o order_n to_o know_v which_o of_o the_o two_o communion_n be_v schismatical_a and_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n to_o this_o effect_n i_o prove_v that_o though_o the_o protestant_a party_n shall_v be_v despoil_v of_o all_o those_o advantage_n treat_v on_o provide_v it_o have_v on_o its_o side_n the_o true_a doctrine_n and_o worship_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v it_o not_o it_o have_v all_o the_o right_n of_o a_o christian_a society_n that_o its_o assembly_n be_v lawful_a and_o that_o its_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v just_a from_o whence_o it_o evident_o follow_v that_o all_o those_o prejudices_fw-la be_v to_o no_o purpose_n in_o the_o decide_n of_o our_o question_n and_o that_o all_o depend_v on_o the_o discussion_n of_o those_o point_n that_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o we_o see_v here_o the_o use_n of_o my_o supposition_n the_o business_n at_o present_a be_v not_o to_o know_v whether_o we_o have_v right_o in_o the_o foundation_n or_o not_o if_o that_o be_v all_o the_o business_n i_o will_v not_o suppose_v it_o at_o all_o i_o will_v prove_v it_o but_o the_o business_n be_v to_o know_v whether_o they_o can_v by_o those_o mere_a prejudices_fw-la prove_v that_o our_o separate_a assembly_n from_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v unlawful_a but_o i_o show_v that_o they_o can_v because_o if_o we_o have_v reason_n on_o our_o side_n in_o the_o matter_n that_o be_v controvert_v our_o assembly_n be_v lawful_a notwithstanding_o those_o prejudices_fw-la in_o a_o word_n we_o pretend_v to_o maintain_v our_o assembly_n no_o otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o right_n that_o the_o foundation_n give_v we_o but_o by_o that_o right_n alone_o we_o pretend_v to_o maintain_v they_o so_o that_o when_o they_o contest_v it_o with_o we_o we_o run_v back_o to_o the_o foundation_n and_o we_o show_v they_o that_o the_o foundation_n be_v sufficient_a to_o render_v our_o assembly_n lawful_a from_o whence_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o they_o can_v treat_v we_o as_o unjust_a and_o schismatic_n otherwise_o then_o in_o come_v to_o the_o discussion_n of_o the_o foundation_n itself_o when_o therefore_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o to_o convince_v we_o of_o schism_n they_o need_v but_o to_o set_v aside_o the_o discussion_n of_o doctrine_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o to_o show_v we_o that_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n they_o need_v but_o to_o lay_v aside_o that_o reason_n upon_o which_o we_o ground_n ourselves_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v find_v this_o shift_n to_o be_v so_o fine_a and_o ingenuous_a that_o he_o have_v judge_v it_o worthy_a to_o be_v consecrate_a to_o posterity_n by_o one_o of_o his_o book_n in_o fine_a if_o we_o be_v to_o clear_v this_o truth_n by_o example_n we_o need_v but_o to_o repeat_v here_o two_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v justify_v in_o the_o three_o part_n and_o which_o be_v clear_a and_o certain_a out_o of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o one_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arrian_n the_o body_n of_o the_o pastor_n follow_v heresy_n and_o the_o other_o that_o a_o small_a number_n of_o the_o orthodox_n a_o small_a party_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n of_o its_o pastor_n and_o spoil_v of_o all_o those_o kind_n of_o advantage_n do_v not_o fail_v to_o set_v up_o its_o assembly_n apart_o and_o to_o hold_v the_o best_a christian_n society_n that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o do_v those_o that_o be_v heretic_n fill_v the_o church_n and_o as_o for_o the_o orthodox_n they_o meet_v as_o they_o can_v sometime_o in_o the_o field_n and_o sometime_o even_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o novatian_o as_o these_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v indisputable_a and_o justify_v by_o history_n we_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v but_o to_o demand_v of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la whether_o he_o believe_v that_o those_o orthodox_n be_v schismatic_n for_o have_v so_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o their_o pastor_n not_o only_o by_o a_o negative_a separation_n but_o even_o by_o a_o positive_a one_o whether_o he_o believe_v that_o their_o assembly_n be_v unlawful_a whether_o he_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v do_v better_a to_o have_v remain_v in_o the_o same_o communion_n with_o heretic_n then_o in_o withdraw_v from_o they_o whether_o he_o think_v that_o the_o arrian_n can_v have_v say_v to_o they_o with_o any_o reason_n that_o without_o enter_v upon_o any_o examination_n of_o their_o doctrine_n they_o can_v convince_v they_o of_o schism_n by_o that_o separation_n alone_o whether_o he_o believe_v that_o those_o orthodox_n have_v give_v a_o very_a ill_a answer_n in_o say_v that_o since_o their_o separation_n be_v only_o found_v on_o their_o doctrine_n it_o be_v by_o that_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o judge_v and_o not_o by_o those_o vain_a and_o deceitful_a advantage_n which_o sometime_o follow_v the_o church_n but_o which_o oftentimes_o abandon_v it_o also_o and_o upon_o which_o nothing_o of_o certainty_n can_v be_v establish_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la may_v answer_v what_o he_o please_v but_o we_o be_v at_o least_o assure_v that_o he_o can_v neither_o condemn_v the_o arrian_n without_o justify_v we_o nor_o justify_v the_o orthodox_n without_o condemn_v himself_o it_o be_v necessary_a then_o that_o we_o come_v to_o agree_v in_o this_o truth_n that_o the_o right_a to_o be_v in_o a_o external_n society_n and_o by_o consequence_n to_o raise_v assembly_n belong_v to_o the_o true_o faithful_a only_o and_o that_o if_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o pastor_n teach_v false_a doctrine_n and_o corrupt_v the_o ministry_n to_o that_o degree_n that_o it_o can_v be_v allow_v to_o the_o faithful_a to_o live_v in_o communion_n with_o they_o the_o true_a faithful_a remain_v yet_o unite_v among_o themselves_o by_o that_o external_n union_n out_o of_o which_o their_o assembly_n proceed_v and_o that_o by_o consequence_n they_o have_v a_o right_a to_o meet_v together_o and_o to_o make_v up_o a_o body_n in_o a_o visible_a communion_n but_o they_o will_v say_v if_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o general_o all_o the_o pastor_n forsake_v those_o pretend_a true_a faithful_n whereof_o you_o speak_v who_o be_v there_o that_o shall_v assemble_v they_o they_o be_v all_o but_o so_o many_o mere_a private_a man_n and_o what_o right_o have_v those_o private_a man_n to_o gather_v assembly_n beside_o religious_a assembly_n be_v chief_o institute_v for_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o word_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sarrament_n and_o can_v any_o ascribe_v the_o right_n of_o preach_v and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n to_o mere_a private_a man_n separate_v from_o their_o pastor_n when_o therefore_o
pretence_n and_o border_n on_o the_o great_a rashness_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o pretend_a fault_n of_o the_o reformation_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v be_v not_o principle_n so_o demonstrative_a and_o so_o evident_a among_o christian_n that_o after_o they_o they_o ought_v to_o hear_v nothing_o more_o we_o ought_v then_o to_o yield_v to_o this_o proof_n its_o place_n in_o our_o discussion_n but_o without_o any_o prejudice_n as_o to_o those_o that_o may_v be_v draw_v for_o or_o against_o the_o very_a tenet_n that_o be_v contest_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v first_o examine_v as_o the_o more_o natural_a and_o most_o decisive_a that_o be_v so_o i_o hold_v that_o that_o which_o they_o have_v set_v before_o we_o will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n at_o all_o for_o if_o from_o the_o examination_n that_o we_o shall_v make_v of_o those_o matter_n in_o themselves_o it_o result_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o error_n which_o we_o have_v reject_v as_o such_o but_o christian_a truth_n we_o have_v no_o further_a need_n either_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la against_o the_o reformation_n the_o reformation_n be_v sufficient_o overthrow_v and_o if_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o result_v that_o those_o be_v error_n all_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o the_o prejudices_fw-la in_o the_o world_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o persuade_v man_n of_o good_a understanding_n that_o they_o be_v truth_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o the_o reformation_n be_v not_o just_a for_o it_o be_v always_o just_a to_o extirpate_v error_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o appear_v already_o that_o that_o debate_n which_o they_o have_v raise_v against_o we_o about_o the_o justice_n of_o our_o reformation_n and_o our_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v rather_o a_o field_n wherein_o they_o will_v busy_v themselves_o in_o subtlety_n and_o declamation_n to_o amuse_v the_o people_n than_o a_o just_a controversy_n whence_o one_o may_v just_o expect_v any_o profit_n yet_o as_o those_o subtlety_n and_o declamation_n how_o vain_a and_o false_a soever_o they_o be_v fail_v not_o of_o find_v applause_n in_o the_o world_n and_o always_o make_v some_o impression_n on_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n we_o acknowledge_v the_o too_o great_a effect_n that_o they_o have_v produce_v which_o be_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n look_v upon_o we_o as_o schismatic_n and_o think_v that_o we_o have_v disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o family_n of_o god_n and_o violate_v the_o right_a of_o that_o religious_a society_n which_o have_v unite_v we_o with_o they_o the_o idea_n which_o they_o form_n of_o our_o religion_n appear_v not_o half_a so_o odious_a to_o they_o after_o what_o manner_n they_o have_v disguise_v we_o the_o most_o equitable_a among_o they_o discern_v and_o fail_v not_o sometime_o free_o to_o confess_v the_o same_o that_o we_o have_v all_o doctrine_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o man_n salvation_n that_o our_o worship_n as_o plain_a as_o it_o be_v have_v nothing_o which_o do_v not_o tend_v to_o nourish_v in_o their_o heart_n a_o true_a piety_n and_o a_o solid_a virtue_n and_o that_o as_o to_o the_o form_n of_o our_o government_n it_o have_v nothing_o so_o remote_a either_o from_o prudence_n or_o from_o equity_n or_o from_o the_o charity_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v recommend_v to_o we_o but_o it_o be_v a_o far_o different_a idea_n which_o they_o form_v within_o themselves_o of_o our_o separation_n for_o it_o become_v insupportable_a to_o they_o when_o they_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o specious_a name_n of_o a_o church_n that_o aught_o to_o command_v the_o veneration_n of_o all_o holy_a man_n so_o that_o this_o be_v most_o ordinary_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o reproach_n which_o they_o the_o more_o exaggerate_v as_o a_o thing_n about_o which_o they_o imagine_v we_o have_v not_o the_o least_o show_n wherewith_o to_o defend_v ourselves_o i_o dare_v affirm_v that_o as_o to_o the_o far_o great_a part_n that_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o almost_o the_o only_a matter_n that_o make_v they_o appear_v so_o much_o exasperate_v against_o we_o it_o be_v necessary_a then_o that_o we_o justify_v ourselves_o and_o that_o we_o clear_v to_o their_o mind_n that_o honour_n which_o we_o have_v not_o only_o to_o live_v among_o they_o in_o the_o same_o civil_a society_n but_o also_o to_o depend_v on_o their_o lawful_a authority_n in_o respect_n of_o those_o humane_a affair_n wherein_o we_o be_v engage_v our_o own_o innocence_n command_v it_o of_o we_o not_o to_o say_v that_o the_o inheritance_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o our_o father_n be_v of_o a_o value_n sufficient_o great_a to_o merit_v a_o defence_n after_o what_o manner_n soever_o they_o attack_v it_o we_o ought_v then_o to_o endeavour_v to_o let_v they_o see_v that_o that_o which_o they_o be_v make_v to_o believe_v concern_v we_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o false_a imputation_n that_o we_o have_v a_o infinite_o great_a respect_n for_o the_o church_n than_o any_o of_o those_o who_o oppose_v themselves_o to_o hinder_v its_o reformation_n that_o their_o maxim_n tend_v to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n where_o we_o tend_v only_o to_o preserve_v it_o that_o our_o separation_n from_o rome_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o effect_n of_o that_o love_n and_o jealousy_n that_o we_o have_v for_o the_o church_n and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v most_o unjust_a if_o they_o shall_v hate_v we_o upon_o a_o account_n that_o aught_o on_o the_o contrary_a to_o draw_v from_o they_o all_o their_o esteem_n and_o love_n towards_o we_o it_o be_v then_o about_o this_o that_o we_o entreat_v that_o they_o will_v calm_o hear_v we_o and_o judge_v we_o without_o passion_n and_o without_o interest_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o that_o god_n who_o we_o all_o acknowledge_v for_o our_o sovereign_a judge_n those_o who_o always_o act_n against_o we_o with_o a_o pride_n that_o hurry_v they_o away_o and_o who_o have_v resolve_v to_o condemn_v we_o and_o to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o their_o power_n to_o destroy_v we_o what_o ever_o we_o say_v will_v not_o possible_o take_v our_o request_n to_o be_v just_a and_o in_o that_o case_n we_o shall_v content_v ourselves_o as_o to_o they_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n which_o persuade_v we_o not_o only_o that_o god_n will_v not_o condemn_v we_o for_o have_v be_v reform_v but_o also_o that_o he_o certain_o will_v if_o we_o do_v not_o in_o that_o follow_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o heart_n but_o there_o be_v yet_o enough_o person_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o too_o much_o equity_n to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o such_o a_o sort_n of_o people_n these_o equitable_a person_n be_v those_o of_o who_o we_o demand_v that_o hear_n and_o that_o same_o equity_n and_o moderation_n of_o which_o they_o make_v such_o profession_n and_o which_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o subject_n treat_v on_o challenge_v they_o to_o yield_v we_o we_o shall_v tell_v they_o nothing_o which_o shall_v not_o be_v found_v either_o on_o matter_n of_o fact_n know_v to_o all_o or_o upon_o the_o inviolable_a principle_n of_o religion_n or_o upon_o the_o light_n of_o common_a sense_n to_o set_v down_o this_o matter_n in_o some_o order_n i_o propose_v to_o myself_o to_o make_v evident_a these_o four_o proposition_n 1._o that_o our_o father_n have_v both_o right_a and_o obligation_n to_o examine_v the_o state_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o latin_a church_n such_o as_o it_o be_v in_o their_o day_n 2._o that_o the_o reformation_n which_o they_o make_v be_v just_a and_o lawful_a 3._o that_o in_o reform_v themselves_o they_o have_v right_a and_o be_v bind_v to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 4._o that_o in_o reform_v and_o separate_n themselves_o they_o have_v right_a and_o obligation_n to_o maintain_v among_o themselves_o a_o christian_a society_n by_o public_a assembly_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o ministry_n i_o do_v not_o pretend_v that_o in_o treat_v of_o these_o four_o proposition_n i_o have_v exhaust_v all_o my_o subject_n but_o yet_o i_o hope_v that_o there_o will_v be_v few_o question_n that_o have_v some_o relation_n to_o it_o which_o i_o do_v not_o sufficient_o touch_v upon_o and_o few_o objection_n which_o i_o do_v not_o answer_n i_o will_v particular_o answer_v to_o all_o those_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o that_o book_n of_o prejudices_fw-la as_o the_o order_n of_o the_o matter_n that_o i_o treat_v of_o shall_v present_v they_o to_o i_o none_o of_o which_o will_v begin_v to_o oppose_v themselves_o till_o the_o seven_o chapter_n because_o that_o author_n have_v pass_v by_o in_o silence_n a_o great_a many_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o foundation_n of_o this_o controversy_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o touch_v upon_o
with_o a_o sensible_a displeasure_n that_o i_o mention_v the_o life_n that_o we_o have_v lead_v we_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o have_v swell_v this_o storm_n so_o high_a let_v we_o cast_v ourselves_o into_o the_o sea_n and_o since_o you_o have_v our_o confession_n punish_v we_o after_o what_o manner_n you_o please_v a_o little_a before_o that_o he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o trouble_n wherewith_o france_n be_v find_v to_o be_v agitate_a be_v the_o effect_n of_o a_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o have_v draw_v that_o judgement_n upon_o themselves_o by_o that_o corruption_n of_o manner_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v among_o all_o order_n of_o man_n and_o by_o the_o subversion_n of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n charles_n the_o nine_o also_o in_o those_o memoir_n that_o he_o give_v to_o that_o cardinal_n for_o the_o council_n have_v express_o set_v down_o this_o article_n that_o his_o majesty_n with_o the_o most_o extreme_a regret_n be_v constrain_v missive_n to_o complain_v of_o the_o unclean_a life_n of_o the_o ecclesiastic_n who_o bring_v so_o much_o scandal_n and_o corruption_n among_o the_o common_a people_n beyond_o the_o scandal_n they_o take_v at_o their_o minister_n that_o to_o he_o it_o seem_v necessary_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v very_o speedy_o provide_v against_o tell_v i_o i_o beseech_v you_o what_o can_v any_o just_o conclude_v from_o the_o so_o licentious_a life_n of_o person_n who_o for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n since_o have_v make_v themselves_o master_n of_o that_o religion_n but_o that_o there_o be_v very_o little_a appearance_n that_o that_o religion_n be_v preserve_v in_o its_o ancient_a purity_n i_o acknowledge_v the_o ill_a life_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v not_o of_o its_o self_n a_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o separate_v from_o he_o but_o i_o affirm_v that_o when_o that_o wicked_a life_n be_v find_v to_o be_v so_o general_a in_o the_o clergy_n and_o remain_v there_o for_o some_o age_n without_o amendment_n it_o give_v a_o prejudice_n exceed_v reasonable_a of_o some_o great_a corruption_n in_o that_o very_a religion_n itself_o for_o man_n of_o such_o impure_a manner_n can_v be_v but_o very_o ill_a guardian_n of_o faith_n and_o piety_n 7._o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o particular_a that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o that_o church_n which_o call_v herself_o the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o and_o which_o have_v in_o possession_n the_o government_n of_o they_o according_a to_o her_o own_o will_n confirm_v our_o father_n in_o this_o prejudice_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o see_v the_o evil_n do_v not_o confine_v itself_o only_o to_o the_o border_n but_o that_o it_o be_v get_v into_o the_o very_a heart_n itself_o that_o be_v into_o that_o church_n which_o as_o the_o chief_a shed_v its_o influence_n on_o the_o other_o further_o i_o think_v i_o need_v not_o prove_v that_o corruption_n where_o every_o one_o will_v yield_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v contest_v those_o who_o have_v read_v the_o history_n of_o luitprand_n of_o glaber_n of_o matthew_n paris_n of_o platina_n of_o baronius_n and_o onuphrius_n and_o of_o many_o other_o can_v deny_v that_o since_o the_o nine_o century_n the_o see_v of_o rome_n have_v be_v most_o frequent_o fill_v with_o pope_n who_o life_n and_o government_n have_v not_o very_o much_o edify_v the_o world_n every_o one_o know_v the_o complaint_n that_o all_o the_o earth_n have_v make_v and_o which_o it_o make_v yet_o in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n not_o only_o against_o the_o pope_n but_o against_o all_o that_o they_o call_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n the_o corruption_n whereof_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o cause_n of_o that_o in_o all_o the_o other_o church_n i_o shall_v not_o urge_v this_o matter_n further_o but_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o our_o father_n do_v not_o deserve_v the_o least_o blame_n if_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o such_o a_o sort_n of_o man_n can_v have_v a_o great_a zeal_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n or_o that_o they_o be_v so_o fit_a and_o likely_a to_o preserve_v christianity_n entire_a among_o they_o nor_o in_o fine_a that_o whereas_o it_o be_v for_o so_o many_o age_n accuse_v to_o be_v the_o very_a centre_n of_o all_o vice_n it_o can_v be_v the_o centre_n of_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o holiness_n 8._o but_o although_o our_o father_n shall_v not_o have_v reflect_v on_o the_o person_n of_o such_o man_n yet_o it_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o they_o find_v enough_o character_n of_o irregularity_n in_o the_o maxim_n in_o the_o pretension_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o make_v they_o just_o conclude_v that_o they_o can_v not_o but_o be_v very_o ill_a conservator_n of_o the_o purity_n of_o religion_n what_o else_o can_v they_o gather_v from_o that_o excessive_a pride_n so_o intolerable_a to_o all_o christian_n that_o consist_v in_o make_v their_o foot_n to_o be_v kiss_v with_o a_o submission_n far_o beyond_o what_o be_v yield_v to_o king_n in_o make_v themselves_o to_o be_v bear_v on_o the_o shoulder_n of_o man_n and_o to_o be_v serve_v by_o the_o great_a prince_n or_o by_o their_o ambassador_n to_o wear_v three_o crown_n and_o to_o be_v adore_v upon_o the_o altar_n after_o their_o election_n &_o c_o 9_o what_o can_v they_o say_v to_o those_o proud_a title_n which_o they_o with_o the_o great_a scandal_n affect_v to_o have_v give_v they_o as_o that_o of_o god_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n whereof_o see_v the_o word_n it_o evident_o appear_v 7._o that_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v call_v god_n by_o constantine_n can_v be_v neither_o bind_v to_o any_o thing_n nor_o loose_v by_o any_o secular_a power_n for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o a_o god_n can_v be_v judge_v by_o man_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n augustin_n steuchus_n say_v that_o constantine_n call_v the_o pope_n god_n and_o that_o he_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v so_o and_o he_o assure_v we_o that_o from_o thence_o it_o be_v constantini_n that_o he_o make_v that_o excellent_a edict_n in_o his_o favour_n he_o will_v say_v that_o false_a donation_n he_o adore_v he_o say_v he_o as_o god_n as_o the_o successor_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o peter_n and_o render_v he_o all_o the_o way_n that_o he_o can_v divine_a honour_n worship_v he_o as_o the_o live_a image_n of_o jesus_n christ_n so_o clement_n the_o seven_o anti_fw-la pope_n with_o his_o cardinal_n at_o avignon_n in_o a_o letter_n which_o they_o write_v to_o charles_n the_o six_o which_o be_v set_v down_o by_o froissard_n they_o make_v no_o scruple_n of_o 147._o call_v he_o a_o god_n upon_o earth_n see_v as_o there_o be_v say_v they_o but_o one_o only_a god_n in_o the_o heaven_n there_o can_v and_o ought_v not_o of_o right_a to_o be_v more_o than_o one_o god_n on_o earth_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n angelus_n politianus_n sextum_fw-la in_o a_o oration_n that_o he_o make_v for_o those_o that_o be_v send_v as_o deputy_n from_o the_o city_n sienna_n to_o alexander_n the_o six_o ascribe_v divinity_n to_o he_o we_o rejoice_v among_o ourselves_o say_v he_o to_o behold_v you_o raise_v above_o all_o humane_a thing_n and_o elevate_v even_o to_o divinity_n itself_o see_v nothing_o next_o unto_o god_n which_o be_v not_o set_v under_o you_o he_o be_v not_o the_o only_a person_n that_o treat_v that_o pope_n as_o god_n for_o raynaldus_n relate_v that_o amid_o the_o pomp_n of_o his_o coronation_n one_o may_v 27._o see_v in_o divers_a place_n of_o the_o street_n of_o rome_n the_o arm_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o verse_n and_o epigram_n underneath_o among_o which_o this_o distich_n may_v be_v read_v caesar_fw-la magna_fw-la fuit_fw-la nunc_fw-la roma_fw-la est_fw-la maxima_fw-la sextus_fw-la regnat_fw-la alexander_n ille_fw-la vir_fw-la iste_fw-la deus_fw-la 10._o what_o can_v our_o father_n say_v to_o that_o divine_a power_n that_o the_o flatterer_n of_o the_o pope_n attribute_v to_o they_o as_o the_o glossary_a of_o glossa_fw-la the_o decretal_n which_o remark_n that_o every_o one_o say_v of_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o have_v all_o divine_a power_n caeleste_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la that_o by_o reason_n of_o that_o he_o can_v change_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n apply_v the_o essential_a property_n of_o one_o thing_n to_o another_o that_o he_o can_v make_v something_o of_o nothing_o that_o a_o proposition_n which_o be_v nothing_o he_o can_v make_v to_o be_v something_o that_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o shall_v please_v to_o do_v his_o will_n may_v serve_v for_o a_o reason_n that_o there_o be_v none_o that_o can_v say_v to_o he_o why_o do_v thou_o do_v that_o that_o he_o can_v dispense_v with_o whatsoever_o be_v right_a and_o make_v injustice_n to_o become_v justice_n by_o change_v and_o alter_v of_o that_o which_o be_v right_a and_o in_o fine_a that_o he_o
consequence_n for_o all_o than_o for_o one_o 9_o in_o fine_a it_o will_v also_o follow_v from_o thence_o that_o our_o father_n be_v bind_v upon_o that_o pretence_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n to_o examine_v all_o the_o point_n of_o that_o religion_n for_o firm_o to_o assure_v themselves_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o privilege_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o consider_v it_o in_o its_o ground_n and_o its_o cause_n which_o be_v those_o proof_n that_o they_o call_v a_o priori_fw-la they_o ought_v further_o to_o look_v on_o it_o in_o its_o effect_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o see_v it_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n in_o its_o maxim_n in_o its_o voice_n and_o diligent_o to_o take_v notice_n whether_o they_o may_v see_v all_o the_o character_n of_o infallibility_n resplendent_a in_o it_o or_o whether_o they_o may_v not_o discover_v some_o error_n it_o be_v after_o this_o manner_n that_o the_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n acknowledge_v and_o cleave_v to_o he_o i_o have_v give_v unto_o they_o say_v he_o the_o word_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o and_o they_o have_v receive_v 17._o they_o and_o have_v know_v sure_o that_o i_o come_v out_o from_o thou_o to_o who_o shall_v we_o go_v say_v they_o to_o he_o thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n our_o father_n have_v so_o much_o the_o more_o reason_n to_o use_v 6._o they_o also_o when_o all_o the_o prejudices_fw-la of_o corruption_n which_o we_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n present_v themselves_o to_o their_o sight_n they_o observe_v there_o all_o the_o character_n of_o humane_a weakness_n of_o ambition_n covetousness_n interest_n negligence_n of_o plot_v contrivance_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o the_o other_o mark_n of_o fallible_a man_n who_o can_v then_o blame_v they_o for_o hold_v so_o circumspect_a a_o course_n to_o come_v to_o the_o full_a and_o clear_a knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n so_o that_o that_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n be_v so_o far_o from_o drive_v our_o father_n from_o the_o examine_n of_o those_o doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v in_o their_o day_n that_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n necessary_o engage_v and_o lead_v they_o to_o it_o chap._n vi_o a_o examination_n of_o the_o proof_n which_o they_o produce_v to_o establish_v the_o infalliblity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n let_v we_o see_v nevertheless_o upon_o what_o foundation_n that_o pretend_a prerogative_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v build_v they_o produce_v on_o this_o subject_a some_o passage_n of_o scripture_n and_o some_o argument_n but_o as_o to_o the_o passage_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o which_o respect_v more_o peculiarly_a the_o latin_a church_n then_o the_o greek_a the_o egyptian_a the_o aethiopian_a and_o other_o every_o one_o of_o which_o have_v as_o much_o reason_n to_o apply_v they_o to_o themselves_o as_o the_o latin_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o here_o dispute_v about_o a_o favour_n common_a to_o all_o christian_a society_n but_o about_o a_o peculiar_a prerogative_n pretend_v to_o by_o the_o latin_n for_o they_o be_v all_o agree_v that_o all_o other_o society_n have_v err_v notwithstanding_o all_o those_o passage_n they_o ought_v then_o necessary_o to_o allege_v something_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o latin_n peculiarly_a exclusive_o from_o all_o other_o or_o they_o ought_v to_o come_v to_o a_o acknowledgement_n that_o those_o passage_n do_v not_o at_o all_o establish_v the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n since_o if_o they_o do_v so_o establish_v it_o be_v so_o general_a as_o they_o be_v they_o will_v have_v the_o same_o cogency_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o greek_n the_o armenian_n and_o the_o jacobite_n as_o well_o as_o the_o latin_n 1._o in_o effect_n one_o sort_n of_o those_o passage_n respect_v the_o true_a church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o that_o multitude_n of_o man_n who_o make_v profession_n of_o christianity_n or_o who_o live_v in_o the_o same_o external_a society_n of_o religion_n but_o the_o true_o faithful_a those_o holy_a man_n who_o god_n have_v inward_o regenerate_v by_o his_o spirit_n and_o who_o he_o lead_v to_o life_n everlasting_a it_o be_v of_o that_o church_n that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o she_o 28._o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o there_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v her_o head_n that_o she_o be_v his_o spouse_n it_o be_v only_o of_o the_o true_o faithful_a and_o no_o otherwise_o that_o these_o promise_n be_v verify_v upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o always_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n who_o shall_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v lead_v you_o into_o 28._o all_o truth_n where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v be_v there_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o these_o passage_n denote_v nothing_o less_o than_o a_o infallibility_n either_o in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n or_o in_o the_o side_n that_o be_v strong_a or_o in_o council_n or_o in_o the_o decision_n of_o pope_n or_o in_o tradition_n and_o ancient_a custom_n but_o they_o only_o signify_v that_o god_n will_v have_v always_o some_o true_o faithful_a upon_o the_o earth_n even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o will_v accompany_v they_o with_o such_o a_o measure_n of_o the_o light_n and_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n as_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n bring_v they_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n 2._o there_o be_v other_o which_o they_o yet_o make_v use_n of_o far_o less_o to_o the_o purpose_n because_o they_o signify_v only_o the_o duty_n of_o pastor_n and_o what_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o do_v and_o not_o that_o that_o in_o effect_n they_o shall_v do_v such_o as_o these_o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n son_n of_o man_n i_o 2._o have_v set_v thou_o for_o a_o watchman_n over_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n the_o priest_n lip_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n and_o they_o shall_v seek_v the_o law_n at_o his_o mouth_n i_o have_v set_v watchman_n upon_o thy_o wall_n o_o jerusalem_n which_o shall_v never_o 62._o hold_v their_o peace_n day_n nor_o night_n and_o he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n 4._o for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n these_o and_o some_o other_o like_o passage_n show_v to_o what_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v natural_o appoint_v and_o the_o obligation_n of_o those_o that_o be_v call_v to_o it_o but_o they_o be_v very_o far_o from_o give_v from_o thence_o a_o prerogative_n of_o infallibility_n 3._o they_o allege_v also_o some_o passage_n that_o recommend_v to_o the_o faithful_a the_o have_v a_o respect_n for_o and_o a_o obedience_n to_o their_o pastor_n such_o be_v these_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o reject_v 10._o you_o reject_v i_o obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o you_o and_o submit_v yourselves_o for_o they_o watch_v for_o your_o soul_n the_o scribe_n and_o the_o 13._o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n seat_n all_z therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o bid_v you_o observe_v that_o observe_v and_o do_v but_o do_v not_o you_o after_o their_o work_n but_o i_o 23._o can_v see_v what_o this_o last_o passage_n shall_v let_v we_o see_v but_o that_o all_o those_o exhortation_n that_o god_n make_v to_o the_o faithful_a to_o have_v a_o submission_n to_o the_o word_n of_o their_o pastor_n denote_v very_o true_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o people_n in_o that_o matter_n but_o they_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o settle_v any_o infallibility_n in_o their_o pastor_n for_o be_v this_o that_o that_o jesus_n christ_n will_v say_v that_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n as_o long_o as_o they_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n be_v infallible_a he_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_n accuse_v they_o of_o have_v make_v void_a the_o commandment_n of_o god_n by_o their_o tradition_n and_o who_o elsewhere_o give_v his_o disciple_n such_o a_o charge_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o their_o pernicious_a doctrine_n how_o many_o time_n be_v that_o obedience_n that_o respect_n and_o that_o submission_n recommend_v to_o child_n to_o give_v to_o their_o father_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v it_o that_o the_o scripture_n in_o that_o ascribe_v to_o their_o
of_o their_o alm_n and_o he_o may_v be_v see_v far_a often_o in_o the_o field_n with_o the_o soldier_n then_o in_o his_o cloister_n he_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o father_n and_o the_o instructor_n of_o his_o brethren_n but_o he_o be_v their_o seducer_n and_o their_o tyrant_n for_o while_o he_o enjoy_v himself_o and_o life_n in_o pomp_n and_o delight_n those_o poor_a miserable_a religious_a pass_v away_o all_o their_o day_n in_o murmur_n and_o affliction_n that_o author_n describe_v in_o the_o same_o style_v the_o life_n of_o the_o canon_n monk_n and_o other_o ecclesiastic_n and_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v do_v not_o leave_v we_o any_o more_o room_n to_o doubt_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n in_o those_o day_n as_o great_a and_o as_o general_a a_o disorder_n as_o can_v be_v conceive_v he_o do_v not_o spare_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a 6._o he_o set_v forth_o lively_o enough_o their_o excess_n even_o to_o say_v that_o that_o court_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n that_o it_o be_v a_o loathsome_a pit_n that_o devour_v riches_n and_o be_v fill_v by_o covetousness_n that_o the_o law_n be_v far_o 8._o from_o the_o priest_n the_o vision_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o council_n of_o the_o old_a man_n that_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n serve_v themselves_o by_o simony_n and_o ambition_n and_o that_o in_o a_o word_n the_o sin_n of_o those_o people_n be_v such_o that_o they_o can_v be_v either_o conceal_v or_o deny_v since_o rome_n be_v become_v a_o gulf_n of_o crime_n where_o the_o pope_n ought_v to_o cry_v with_o jesus_n christ_n 12._o come_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v rest_n for_o your_o soul_n he_o cry_v come_v and_o see_v i_o in_o a_o far_o great_a pomp_n and_o pride_n then_o ever_o solomon_n be_v in_o come_v to_o my_o court_n empty_a your_o purse_n there_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v destruction_n for_o your_o soul_n the_o disorder_n of_o that_o court_n and_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o those_o time_n be_v a_o thing_n so_o little_a to_o be_v contest_v that_o adrian_n the_o six_o do_v not_o scruple_n to_o acknowledge_v it_o in_o the_o memoir_n that_o he_o give_v his_o nuntio_n for_o the_o diet_n of_o nuremberg_n and_o which_o raynaldus_n relate_v for_o he_o give_v he_o a_o express_a charge_n to_o confess_v that_o the_o trouble_n of_o germany_n about_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n have_v fall_v out_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o priest_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o scripture_n show_v that_o the_o 1522._o sin_n of_o the_o people_n come_v from_o those_o of_o their_o priest_n for_o which_o reason_n it_o be_v as_o chrysostome_n say_v that_o when_o our_o saviour_n will_v heal_v jerusalem_n he_o enter_v first_o into_o the_o temple_n to_o correct_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o priest_n do_v like_o a_o wise_a physician_n who_o go_v to_o the_o root_n of_o the_o evil_n that_o for_o many_o year_n past_a abominable_a thing_n have_v be_v commit_v in_o the_o holy_a see_v that_o spiritual_a thing_n have_v be_v abuse_v through_o the_o excess_n of_o its_o injunction_n and_o that_o all_o thing_n have_v be_v pervert_v there_o that_o the_o evil_n have_v spread_v itself_o from_o the_o head_n to_o the_o member_n from_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o inferior_a prelate_n and_o that_o as_o many_o as_o they_o all_o be_v that_o be_v to_o say_v prelate_n and_o ecclesiastic_n they_o be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o for_o a_o long_a time_n there_o have_v not_o be_v any_o that_o be_v good_a no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o we_o can_v produce_v a_o multitude_n of_o other_o such_o testimony_n if_o we_o do_v not_o hope_v that_o unbiased_a person_n will_v agree_v upon_o it_o as_o not_o long_o since_o a_o author_n in_o these_o time_n have_v do_v in_o a_o book_n entitle_v motive_n to_o a_o reunion_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o cause_n 6._o of_o the_o separation_n say_v he_o be_v the_o open_a abuse_n of_o indulgence_n and_o the_o ignorance_n covetousness_n and_o the_o scandalous_a life_n of_o the_o churchman_n the_o superstition_n of_o the_o mean_a sort_n of_o people_n who_o have_v not_o be_v well_o instruct_v the_o immense_a riches_n and_o riotous_a profuseness_n of_o the_o prelate_n their_o too_o great_a care_n in_o external_n in_o their_o magnificence_n ornament_n and_o increase_v of_o ceremony_n and_o little_a devotion_n in_o the_o chief-worship_n of_o god_n the_o indiscreat_a zeal_n of_o some_o brethren_n who_o seem_v to_o have_v cast_v off_o all_o honour_n for_o the_o master_n to_o give_v it_o to_o his_o servant_n the_o tyranny_n that_o parent_n exercise_v over_o their_o child_n to_o imprison_v they_o in_o cloister_n the_o wickedness_n of_o those_o who_o contrive_v false_a miracle_n to_o draw_v to_o themselves_o the_o concourse_n of_o the_o people_n add_v to_o that_o politic_a humane_a consideration_n of_o some_o prince_n and_o king_n who_o have_v not_o receive_v from_o the_o pope_n all_o possible_a satisfaction_n or_o who_o take_v occasion_n from_o thence_o to_o cast_v themselves_o among_o a_o party_n of_o persecute_a man_n the_o better_a to_o establish_v their_o affair_n in_o brief_a all_o that_o which_o ignorance_n superstition_n and_o covetousness_n can_v contribute_v serve_v for_o a_o pretence_n to_o those_o who_o will_v separate_v themselves_o to_o reform_v those_o disorder_n the_o ground_n be_v not_o only_o specious_a but_o it_o have_v be_v in_o a_o manner_n accompany_v with_o truth_n if_o the_o church_n in_o those_o day_n have_v be_v throughout_o in_o that_o miserable_a condition_n which_o we_o have_v describe_v and_o principal_o so_o in_o those_o place_n wherein_o that_o detestable_a separation_n begin_v those_o who_o separate_v be_v aid_v indirect_o by_o the_o zeal_n of_o some_o good_a man_n who_o cry_v out_o loud_o against_o those_o disorder_n abuse_n and_o corruption_n of_o manner_n the_o people_n who_o judge_v no_o otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o appearance_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v easy_o carry_v away_o with_o that_o torrent_n see_v that_o they_o do_v not_o complain_v but_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o know_v be_v but_o too_o true_a and_o which_o the_o better_a sort_n of_o catholic_n grant_v behold_v then_o in_o what_o a_o condition_n the_o church_n be_v in_o those_o day_n and_o we_o may_v from_o thence_o methinks_v ask_v all_o rational_a person_n whither_o they_o believe_v in_o good_a earnest_n that_o our_o father_n ought_v to_o have_v expect_v a_o reformation_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o clergy_n which_o on_o the_o one_o side_n have_v so_o many_o worldly_a interest_n that_o bind_v they_o to_o oppose_v it_o and_o which_o on_o the_o other_o find_v itself_o so_o deep_o sink_v into_o ignorance_n superstition_n and_o corruption_n but_o to_o urge_v that_o matter_n yet_o further_o we_o need_v but_o to_o set_v down_o those_o just_a complaint_n which_o they_o have_v make_v for_o a_o long_a time_n touch_v those_o disorder_n and_o the_o continual_a demand_n that_o all_o the_o world_n make_v for_o a_o good_a reformation_n at_o least_o in_o respect_n of_o manner_n of_o discipline_n and_o those_o most_o gross_a abuse_n without_o ever_o be_v able_a to_o obtain_v it_o i_o pass_v by_o the_o complaint_n of_o the_o ten_o and_o eleven_o century_n which_o will_v be_v but_o too_o great_a if_o they_o be_v compare_v with_o those_o just_a ground_n that_o all_o honest_a man_n in_o those_o day_n have_v for_o they_o for_o those_o two_o century_n be_v famous_a for_o wickedness_n grievous_a crime_n and_o those_o who_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o history_n can_v deny_v it_o but_o not_o to_o go_v so_o far_o not_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n either_o of_o the_o scandalous_a life_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o that_o time_n or_o the_o war_n wherewith_o they_o fill_v all_o the_o west_n or_o of_o the_o abuse_v they_o commit_v in_o their_o excommunication_n or_o of_o the_o baptise_v of_o bell_n wherewith_o they_o increase_v the_o ecclesiastical_a ceremony_n or_o of_o the_o vice_n which_o reign_v then_o throughout_o all_o the_o clergy_n can_v they_o tell_v we_o what_o good_a effect_n those_o smart_a censure_n of_o saint_n bernard_n wrought_v and_o those_o of_o petrus_n cluniensis_fw-la of_o abbot_n joachim_n of_o petrus_n blesensis_n of_o conrard_n abbot_n of_o vrspurg_n of_o honorius_n of_o autun_n of_o bernard_n monk_n of_o clunie_n of_o arnoul_n a_o english_a monk_n of_o john_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n of_o matthew_n paris_n of_o william_n durandus_fw-la bishop_n of_o man_v of_o robert_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n of_o francis_n petrarch_n archdeacon_n of_o parma_n of_o john_n vitoduram_fw-la of_o dante_n of_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n and_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o other_o who_o cry_v out_o as_o loud_o
arm_n against_o their_o brethren_n the_o catholic_n that_o pernicious_a error_n against_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n may_v be_v observe_v to_o increase_v in_o all_o place_n that_o the_o 1492._o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mother_n and_o root_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v every_o day_n more_o and_o more_o despise_v that_o luxury_n reign_v in_o the_o clergy_n and_o that_o it_o be_v extreme_a among_o the_o people_n that_o the_o patrimony_n of_o saint_n peter_n be_v waste_v that_o christian_a prince_n animate_v with_o a_o mortal_a hatred_n one_o against_o another_o be_v just_o ready_a to_o destroy_v one_o another_o and_o that_o in_o fine_a to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o word_n of_o jeremy_n one_o desolation_n call_v to_o another_o which_o make_v he_o to_o weep_v over_o the_o church_n and_o say_v to_o it_o daughter_n of_o zion_n thy_o desolation_n be_v great_a as_o the_o stretch_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n who_o be_v it_o that_o will_v bring_v thou_o any_o remedy_n after_o have_v represent_v those_o thing_n he_o add_v that_o although_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n be_v exceed_v great_a yet_o they_o may_v notwithstanding_o mitigate_v it_o if_o lay_v aside_o their_o own_o passion_n their_o canvassing_n and_o their_o cabal_n they_o will_v look_v to_o nothing_o else_o in_o choose_v a_o pope_n but_o holiness_n learning_n and_o fitness_n or_o capacity_n that_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o the_o church_n be_v upon_o they_o to_o beg_v of_o they_o a_o pope_n who_o may_v by_o the_o good_a odor_n of_o his_o name_n allure_v the_o faithful_a people_n to_o salvation_n he_o urge_v that_o discourse_n much_o far_o in_o show_v they_o the_o necessity_n that_o the_o church_n stand_v in_o of_o a_o holy_a man_n who_o life_n shall_v be_v without_o reproach_n he_o add_v to_o his_o exhortation_n threaten_n on_o god_n part_n and_o pass_v by_o nothing_o that_o may_v move_v the_o mind_n of_o those_o cardinal_n to_o do_v some_o good_a will_v you_o not_o say_v that_o word_n so_o weighty_a and_o so_o pungent_a aught_o to_o have_v make_v some_o impression_n on_o the_o mind_n of_o those_o cardinal_n and_o that_o at_o least_o for_o that_o time_n they_o shall_v have_v do_v well_o they_o see_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o disorder_n the_o conquest_n that_o the_o infidel_n make_v christian_a prince_n in_o arm_n one_o against_o another_o church-discipline_n overthrow_v the_o life_n of_o the_o clergy_n profuse_a piety_n violent_o beat_v down_o and_o christianity_n degenerate_v in_o all_o place_n can_v any_o one_o imagine_v that_o such_o sad_a representation_n will_v not_o have_v be_v consider_v but_o be_v not_o hasty_a all_o the_o effect_n that_o they_o produce_v be_v the_o creation_n of_o alexander_n the_o six_o that_o name_n alone_o sufficient_o celebrate_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v enough_o to_o make_v man_n understand_v of_o what_o disposition_n those_o prelate_n be_v and_o how_o little_a they_o be_v touch_v with_o the_o wound_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n let_v we_o hear_v nevertheless_o what_o raynaldus_n say_v who_o in_o these_o kind_n of_o thing_n be_v a_o author_n that_o can_v no_o way_n be_v suspect_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o cardinal_n say_v he_o be_v very_o remote_a from_o those_o good_a counsel_n for_o author_n complain_v that_o some_o corrupt_v with_o money_n other_o gain_v by_o promise_n of_o benefice_n and_o place_n and_o other_o draw_v by_o the_o conformity_n of_o a_o vicious_a and_o impure_a life_n give_v their_o voice_n to_o roderic_n borgia_n so_o that_o in_o stead_n of_o choose_v a_o chaste_a man_n they_o choose_v one_o who_o be_v infamous_a for_o his_o uncleanness_n and_o fornication_n for_o which_o he_o have_v be_v reprove_v by_o pius_n the_o second_o yet_o be_v so_o far_o from_o amend_v under_o that_o reproof_n that_o he_o take_v no_o care_n to_o conceal_v his_o impurity_n for_o on_o the_o contrary_n he_o live_v with_o vacosia_n a_o courtesan_n of_o rome_n as_o if_o she_o have_v be_v his_o real_a wife_n and_o he_o have_v divers_a child_n by_o she_o upon_o who_o he_o heapee_v riches_n and_o honour_n as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o he_o to_o do_v as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v his_o legitimate_a child_n behold_v what_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v then_o alexander_n the_o six_o be_v dead_a and_o pius_n the_o three_o who_o succeed_v he_o have_v live_v but_o thirty_o day_n after_o his_o election_n the_o cardinal_n meet_v again_o in_o the_o conclave_n and_o because_o the_o life_n and_o government_n of_o alexander_n have_v give_v scandal_n to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o cardinal_n themselves_o have_v be_v but_o very_o ill_o satisfy_v with_o it_o before_o they_o proceed_v to_o a_o election_n they_o draw_v up_o some_o article_n which_o every_o one_o swear_v to_o observe_v upon_o condition_n the_o nomination_n shall_v fall_v upon_o he_o and_o there_o be_v one_o among_o the_o rest_n which_o carry_v this_o with_o it_o that_o the_o new_a pope_n shall_v call_v at_o the_o end_n of_o two_o year_n a_o general_n council_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o its_o head_n and_o its_o member_n julius_n the_o second_o be_v jul._n choose_v but_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v himself_o bind_v to_o keep_v his_o oath_n for_o seven_o year_n pass_v away_o without_o any_o thing_n be_v talk_v either_o of_o a_o council_n or_o a_o reformation_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o this_o pope_n think_v the_o less_o of_o it_o nevertheless_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o have_v ill_o treat_v one_o party_n of_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n and_o have_v moreover_o stire_v up_o the_o emperor_n maximilian_n and_o lewis_n the_o twelve_o the_o king_n of_o france_n against_o he_o those_o two_o great_a prince_n join_v with_o the_o disgrace_a cardinal_n and_o call_v a_o council_n at_o pisa_n the_o act_n of_o that_o convocation_n on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o prince_n say_v express_o that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o extirpation_n of_o heresy_n and_o error_n which_o through_o the_o negligence_n of_o superior_n have_v spring_v up_o in_o divers_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o particular_o for_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o the_o head_n and_o the_o member_n and_o for_o the_o amendment_n of_o many_o great_a notorious_a long_o continue_v and_o almost_o incorrigible_a crime_n which_o have_v scandalize_v the_o universal_a church_n the_o cardinal_n also_o allege_v the_o oath_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v take_v just_a before_o his_o promotion_n in_o these_o very_a word_n i_o swear_v to_o observe_v and_o perform_v these_o article_n throughout_o and_o in_o every_o particular_a sincere_o unfeigned_o serious_o and_o in_o good_a earnest_n and_o under_o pain_n of_o fall_v under_o perjury_n and_o a_o anathema_n from_o which_o i_o can_v absolve_v myself_o nor_o give_v power_n to_o any_o other_o person_n to_o absolve_v i_o they_o add_v to_o that_o that_o by_o another_o article_n they_o all_o and_o julius_n himself_o have_v swear_v that_o if_o he_o who_o shall_v be_v choose_v shall_v not_o perform_v his_o promise_n in_o good_a earnest_n he_o shall_v be_v hold_v guilty_a of_o perjury_n to_o be_v a_o breaker_n of_o his_o vow_n and_o of_o his_o faith_n a_o disturber_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o scandal_n to_o all_o christianity_n and_o that_o then_o two_o three_o of_o the_o sacred_a college_n shall_v have_v power_n to_o assemble_v a_o general_n council_n the_o council_n then_o be_v assemble_v declare_v open_o that_o there_o be_v a_o most_o evident_a necessity_n of_o reform_v the_o church_n in_o the_o head_n and_o the_o member_n and_o make_v a_o decree_n form_v in_o these_o word_n the_o holy_a and_o sacred_a general_n synod_n of_o pisa_n lawful_o call_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n compose_v a_o general_n council_n and_o represent_v the_o catholic_n church_n do_v define_v and_o declare_v that_o that_o holy_a synod_n will_v not_o nor_o can_v not_o dissolve_v itself_o till_o the_o universal_a church_n shall_v be_v reform_v in_o faith_n and_o manner_n as_o well_o in_o the_o head_n as_o the_o member_n and_o till_o the_o heresy_n and_o schism_n that_o have_v spring_v up_o shall_v be_v extinguish_v behold_v hitherto_o the_o fair_a hope_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o we_o to_o inquire_v whether_o that_o reformation_n be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o the_o call_v of_o that_o assembly_n together_o or_o whether_o it_o be_v only_o a_o pretence_n and_o according_a to_o all_o appearance_n it_o be_v the_o latter_a but_o whatsoever_o it_o may_v be_v whether_o a_o pretence_n or_o not_o three_o thing_n result_v from_o it_o the_o one_o that_o that_o reformation_n be_v general_o judge_v to_o be_v most_o necessary_a the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v extreme_o desire_v by_o the_o people_n for_o they_o will_v never_o have_v contrive_v to_o have_v take_v up_o
into_o a_o inevitable_a damnation_n and_o to_o have_v precipitate_v other_o by_o their_o example_n to_o consent_v to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o utter_a extinction_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o lest_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v want_v in_o that_o respect_n and_o blind_a obedience_n that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o its_o prelate_n require_v of_o all_o the_o world_n this_o will_v be_v in_o truth_n to_o set_v that_o obedience_n at_o two_o high_a a_o price_n and_o it_o will_v cost_v we_o very_o dear_a but_o they_o will_v find_v but_o few_o person_n of_o good_a understanding_n who_o will_v not_o confess_v that_o that_o will_v be_v to_o push_v on_o thing_n a_o little_a too_o far_o they_o will_v say_v it_o may_v be_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o also_o to_o suppose_v a_o thing_n so_o much_o in_o question_n that_o that_o prodigious_a corruption_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n whereof_o we_o speak_v and_o those_o pretend_a interest_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o man_n salvation_n which_o according_a to_o we_o oblige_v our_o father_n to_o reform_v themselves_o without_o have_v any_o regard_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o its_o prelate_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o chimaera_n that_o we_o ourselves_o have_v form_v at_o our_o pleasure_n or_o specious_a pretence_n that_o our_o father_n take_v for_o occasion_n to_o separate_v themselves_o and_o that_o we_o take_v after_o they_o to_o defend_v they_o with_o to_o answer_v to_o this_o objection_n i_o will_v not_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o appearance_n that_o our_o father_n make_v use_v of_o those_o motive_n as_o a_o pretence_n to_o cover_v their_o other_o interest_n with_o they_o can_v scarce_o know_v how_o to_o imagine_v any_o interest_n interweave_v in_o a_o business_n that_o evident_o draw_v after_o it_o a_o thousand_o persecution_n and_o a_o thousand_o affliction_n and_o wherein_o they_o be_v necessary_o to_o go_v through_o the_o most_o violent_a storm_n as_o the_o sequel_n will_v justify_v in_o effect_n let_v they_o say_v as_o much_o as_o much_o as_o they_o will_v that_o luther_n be_v hurry_v away_o by_o his_o resentment_n it_o belong_v to_o those_o who_o treat_v he_o with_o so_o much_o injustice_n to_o dispute_v that_o matter_n with_o he_o before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o god_n who_o will_v one_o day_n render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n but_o as_o to_o our_o father_n who_o have_v no_o part_n in_o those_o personal_a quarrel_n they_o can_v no_o way_n be_v suspect_v to_o have_v have_v a_o interest_n of_o passion_n or_o animosity_n i_o will_v not_o likewise_o say_v that_o if_o our_o father_n themselves_o have_v have_v other_o interest_n than_o those_o which_o they_o have_v set_v before_o we_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o appearance_n that_o yet_o it_o can_v be_v say_v in_o respect_n of_o we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o follow_v they_o in_o the_o true_a faith_n since_o we_o have_v have_v leisure_n enough_o to_o acknowledge_v what_o our_o reformation_n have_v draw_v along_o with_o it_o and_o what_o it_o have_v cost_v we_o but_o i_o will_v only_o say_v that_o i_o make_v that_o supposition_n only_o to_o let_v our_o adversary_n see_v that_o without_o amuse_v we_o any_o more_o with_o those_o formality_n and_o those_o perplex_v way_n which_o they_o make_v use_v of_o continual_o which_o be_v proper_a for_o nothing_o but_o to_o defend_v error_n and_o to_o destroy_v the_o church_n by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o those_o who_o govern_v they_o ought_v to_o come_v to_o the_o bottom_n and_o to_o determine_v with_o we_o those_o fundamental_a article_n upon_o which_o we_o ground_n the_o right_n that_o our_o father_n have_v to_o reform_v themselves_o i_o do_v not_o then_o prejudge_v any_o thing_n by_o my_o supposition_n i_o explain_v only_o the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o the_o persuasion_n that_o they_o entertain_v if_o what_o they_o say_v be_v not_o true_a it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o have_v have_v reason_n to_o reform_v themselves_o for_o without_o any_o more_o reason_v a_o man_n ought_v always_o to_o prefer_v god_n and_o his_o own_o salvation_n before_o a_o hundred_o pope_n and_o before_o ten_o thousand_o bishop_n we_o ought_v then_o to_o come_v to_o a_o examination_n of_o those_o matter_n this_o be_v what_o the_o author_n of_o those_o prejudices_fw-la as_o hot_a as_o he_o be_v in_o his_o controversy_n have_v be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v for_o to_o 7._o disentangle_v himself_o from_o a_o argument_n to_o which_o he_o say_v the_o whole_a book_n of_o the_o apology_n of_o mr._n daille_n be_v reducible_a and_o which_o he_o represent_v in_o these_o word_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o remain_v unite_v to_o such_o a_o communion_n as_o bind_v we_o to_o profess_v fundamental_a error_n against_o the_o faith_n and_o to_o practice_v a_o idolatrous_a and_o sacrilegious_a worship_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n bind_v we_o to_o profess_v divers_a fundamental_a error_n and_o to_o practice_v idolatrous_a and_o sacrilegious_a worship_n diverse_a way_n as_o in_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o remain_v in_o her_o communion_n etc._n etc._n he_o distinguish_v between_o two_o sort_n of_o separation_n one_o of_o which_o he_o call_v simple_a and_o negative_a which_o say_v he_o consist_v more_o in_o the_o negation_n of_o certain_a act_n of_o communion_n then_o in_o positive_a act_n against_o that_o communion_n from_o which_o we_o separate_v the_o other_o he_o call_v a_o positive_a separation_n which_o include_v the_o erect_v of_o a_o separate_a society_n the_o establish_n of_o a_o new_a ministry_n and_o the_o positive_a condemnation_n of_o the_o former_a communion_n to_o which_o it_o have_v be_v unite_v upon_o that_o distinction_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n that_o the_o calvinist_n say_v that_o their_o conscience_n will_v not_o any_o more_o allow_v they_o to_o be_v unite_v with_o the_o catholic_n shelter_v themselves_o under_o that_o ambiguous_a term_n of_o union_n that_o their_o conscience_n can_v any_o further_o hinder_v they_o from_o take_v part_n in_o some_o action_n which_o their_o false_a principle_n make_v they_o look_v upon_o as_o criminal_a but_o they_o will_v no_o way_n engage_v they_o to_o all_o those_o excess_n to_o which_o they_o be_v carry_v out_o that_o in_o fine_a if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o without_o betray_v your_o conscience_n they_o can_v not_o give_v that_o honour_n which_o we_o pay_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o their_o relic_n they_o ought_v to_o content_v themselves_o not_o to_o give_v it_o but_o that_o it_o will_v in_o no_o wise_n follow_v from_o thence_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o go_v about_o to_o set_v up_o a_o body_n apart_o that_o it_o be_v this_o latter_a sort_n of_o separation_n whereof_o they_o accuse_v we_o and_o that_o it_o be_v that_o kind_n of_o it_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o justify_v ourselves_o from_o and_o a_o little_a low_o if_o say_v he_o the_o calvinist_n shall_v make_v what_o supposition_n they_o please_v upon_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o they_o shall_v as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o do_v accuse_v it_o of_o error_n and_o idolatry_n it_o will_v be_v enough_o to_o answer_v they_o in_o one_o word_n that_o if_o those_o pretend_a error_n shall_v give_v they_o any_o right_a to_o refuse_v to_o profess_v they_o and_o to_o practice_v those_o action_n which_o shall_v include_v they_o yet_o they_o no_o way_n give_v they_o any_o night_n to_o set_v up_o themselves_o against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o anathematise_v she_o to_o set_v up_o a_o body_n a_o part_n and_o to_o take_v to_o themselves_o the_o quality_n of_o pastor_n although_o they_o have_v neither_o authority_n nor_o mission_n i_o do_v not_o now_o meddle_v with_o that_o positive_a separation_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la make_v so_o great_a a_o crime_n in_o we_o we_o shall_v show_v in_o the_o end_n that_o our_o father_n do_v nothing_o in_o that_o respect_n but_o what_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v in_o their_o conscience_n and_o with_o the_o neglect_n of_o which_o they_o can_v not_o dispense_v without_o sin_n but_o this_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o consider_v in_o its_o proper_a place_n it_o may_v be_v enough_o for_o we_o at_o present_a to_o know_v that_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o author_n of_o prejudices_fw-la we_o may_v suppose_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n indisputable_a that_o our_o father_n obey_v the_o dictate_v of_o their_o conscience_n have_v right_a to_o resuse_v to_o profess_v those_o error_n in_o which_o they_o believe_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v entangle_v and_o no_o more_o to_o take_v any_o part_n in_o certain_a action_n that_o involve_v those_o error_n i_o profess_v it_o be_v desirable_a that_o the_o author_n of_o prejudices_fw-la have_v tell_v we_o a_o little_a more_o clear_o his_o
own_o thought_n of_o that_o negative_a separation_n but_o howsoever_o he_o have_v carry_v himself_o in_o his_o expression_n i_o may_v say_v if_o i_o be_o not_o mistake_v without_o fear_n of_o any_o opposition_n that_o that_o which_o he_o have_v here_o grant_v we_o be_v not_o one_o of_o those_o concession_n which_o be_v sometime_o give_v to_o adversary_n only_o to_o cut_v off_o the_o dispute_n but_o that_o indeed_o he_o have_v speak_v according_a to_o his_o real_a thought_n for_o when_o in_o a_o controversy_n of_o this_o nature_n a_o man_n distinguish_v about_o this_o general_a thesis_n that_o one_o ought_v to_o separate_v from_o a_o church_n which_o bind_v one_o to_o profess_v error_n in_o note_v that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v in_o two_o sense_n the_o one_o that_o one_o ought_v to_o separate_v one_o self_n negative_o in_o not_o meddle_v with_o that_o which_o will_v wound_v the_o conscience_n and_o the_o other_o that_o one_o ought_v to_o separate_v positive_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o one_o ought_v to_o set_v up_o a_o society_n separate_v from_o that_o and_o to_o establish_v a_o new_a ministry_n that_o he_o quit_v the_o former_a sense_n in_o say_v only_o that_o it_o be_v very_o ill_o apply_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n restrain_v himself_o only_o to_o the_o latter_a that_o he_o will_v say_v that_o it_o be_v this_o latter_a kind_n of_o separation_n whereof_o he_o accuse_v we_o and_o about_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o justify_v ourselves_o that_o our_o conscience_n can_v not_o any_o further_o hinder_v we_o then_o from_o take_v part_n in_o those_o action_n which_o our_o principle_n shall_v make_v we_o look_v on_o as_o criminal_a that_o if_o we_o can_v not_o without_o betray_v our_o conscience_n render_v that_o honour_n to_o saint_n and_o relic_n which_o they_o give_v they_o we_o ought_v to_o content_v ourselves_o with_o not_o do_v it_o when_o a_o man_n i_o say_v speak_v as_o the_o author_n of_o prejudices_fw-la after_o this_o manner_n in_o the_o heat_n of_o a_o dispute_n which_o he_o believe_v to_o be_v as_o weighty_a as_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a likelihood_n that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a condescend_v to_o his_o adversary_n but_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a expression_n of_o that_o which_o he_o find_v in_o himself_o to_o be_v very_o just_a and_o reasonable_a howsoever_o it_o be_v without_o inform_v ourselves_o further_o about_o a_o thing_n wherein_o we_o be_v little_o concern_v we_o will_v suppose_v it_o since_o he_o will_v have_v it_o so_o as_o a_o proposition_n not_o to_o be_v dispute_v that_o our_o father_n can_v lawful_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o a_o negative_a separation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o not_o to_o take_v any_o part_n in_o that_o which_o will_v wound_v their_o conscience_n but_o that_o signify_v in_o our_o stile_n that_o they_o have_v right_a to_o reform_v themselves_o since_o we_o call_v nothing_o else_o precise_o reformation_n but_o that_o public_a rejection_n which_o they_o make_v of_o divers_a thing_n which_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v ill_a and_o contrary_a to_o christianity_n whether_o they_o do_v ill_a to_o go_v further_o and_o to_o proceed_v to_o a_o positive_a separation_n that_o be_v a_o question_n apart_o which_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o hinder_v that_o their_o reformation_n take_v only_o as_o a_o negative_a separation_n may_v not_o have_v be_v do_v with_o justice_n and_o according_a to_o that_o right_n that_o conscience_n give_v to_o every_o man_n but_o now_o methinks_v this_o point_n be_v so_o well_o clear_v clear_v a_o multitude_n of_o other_o and_o we_o may_v by_o that_o concession_n of_o the_o author_n of_o prejudices_fw-la very_o well_o decide_v some_o question_n in_o the_o first_o place_n they_o ought_v no_o further_o to_o set_v before_o we_o that_o absolute_a obedience_n to_o the_o order_n and_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o worship_n to_o which_o they_o will_v hitherto_o have_v all_o the_o faithful_a indispensable_o oblige_v for_o if_o those_o who_o conscience_n shall_v tell_v they_o that_o that_o church_n bind_v they_o to_o believe_v error_n and_o to_o practice_v a_o false_a worship_n may_v refuse_v to_o profess_v to_o believe_v those_o error_n and_o to_o perform_v that_o worship_n who_o see_v not_o that_o that_o absolute_a obedience_n be_v overthrow_v since_o it_o will_v depend_v on_o the_o dictate_v of_o the_o conscience_n of_o every_o one_o and_o that_o the_o conscience_n of_o each_o one_o will_v give_v it_o its_o bound_n and_o suspend_v it_o in_o respect_n of_o some_o certain_a thing_n and_o action_n 2._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v no_o more_o treat_v those_o as_o disobedient_a and_o rebellion_n who_o through_o the_o dictate_v of_o their_o conscience_n refuse_v to_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o she_o decide_v and_o to_o practice_v that_o which_o she_o ordain_v nor_o persecute_v they_o as_o such_o and_o whatsoever_o she_o shall_v make_v they_o suffer_v upon_o that_o pretence_n of_o rebellion_n and_o disobedience_n will_v be_v but_o a_o unjust_a persecution_n of_o which_o she_o will_v be_v bind_v to_o give_v a_o account_n to_o god_n and_o man_n 3._o they_o can_v also_o any_o far_a demand_n of_o we_o what_o call_v our_o father_n have_v to_o reform_v themselves_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o reject_v their_o superstition_n and_o the_o error_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o their_o day_n for_o they_o need_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o motion_n of_o their_o conscience_n to_o give_v they_o a_o right_a to_o refuse_v to_o profess_v they_o 4._o they_o ought_v also_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n how_o great_a soever_o it_o may_v be_v be_v it_o yet_o far_o less_o than_o that_o of_o the_o conscience_n since_o it_o be_v not_o only_o limit_v but_o surmount_v and_o that_o whensoeveer_v they_o shall_v be_v in_o oppositian_n a_o man_n will_v have_v right_a to_o leave_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o follow_v his_o conscience_n 5._o and_o since_o even_o a_o erroneous_a conscienes_n such_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la suppose_v we_o and_o that_o of_o our_o father_n to_o be_v can_v suspend_v act_n command_v by_o the_o church_n it_o follow_v necessary_o from_o thence_o that_o to_o reconcile_v the_o church_n and_o the_o conscience_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v set_v in_o opposition_n we_o must_v come_v to_o the_o foundation_n and_o discuss_v the_o thing_n themselves_o for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o free_v the_o conscience_n from_o des-abuser_n error_n and_o how_o much_o more_o be_v we_o oblige_v to_o do_v it_o when_o the_o church_n abuse_v her_o authority_n in_o teach_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v real_o false_a or_o in_o command_v those_o action_n which_o be_v indeed_o unjust_a and_o criminal_a all_o then_o depend_v on_o the_o discussion_n of_o those_o matter_n by_o themselves_o but_o they_o will_v say_v your_o father_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v content_v to_o have_v make_v use_n of_o their_o right_n each_o one_o in_o particular_a they_o can_v have_v keep_v themselves_o from_o make_v any_o profession_n of_o believe_v those_o pretend_a error_n and_o not_o have_v take_v any_o part_n in_o those_o action_n which_o they_o disapprove_v and_o yet_o nevertheless_o have_v keep_v silence_n wherefore_o do_v they_o disturb_v the_o public_a peace_n by_o their_o tumult_n why_o do_v they_o divulge_v by_o their_o out-cry_n the_o judgement_n which_o they_o make_v of_o the_o tenet_n and_o custom_n of_o their_o church_n do_v they_o not_o in_o that_o sin_n against_o that_o respect_n which_o they_o owe_v to_o their_o prelate_n and_o that_o charity_n which_o they_o owe_v to_o their_o brethren_n to_o answer_v to_o this_o objection_n i_o say_v that_o the_o keep_a silence_n be_v not_o always_o equal_o just_a it_o have_v its_o bound_n and_o its_o measure_n according_a to_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v treat_v of_o and_o to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n and_o person_n if_o the_o business_n have_v be_v only_o about_o some_o mere_a question_n of_o the_o school_n upon_o point_n of_o speculation_n or_o about_o some_o unprofitable_a ceremony_n or_o some_o bad_a order_n in_o the_o government_n or_o even_o about_o some_o popular_a superstition_n which_o shall_v not_o have_v proceed_v so_o far_o as_o to_o corrupt_v the_o save_a efficacy_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o confess_v our_o father_n have_v be_v more_o oblige_v to_o have_v keep_v silence_n then_o to_o have_v encounter_v their_o prelate_n and_o raise_v those_o trouble_n through_o the_o diversity_n of_o their_o opinion_n the_o love_n of_o peace_n respect_n for_o order_n christian_n charity_n bid_v we_o to_o bear_v thing_n of_o that_o nature_n well_o which_o we_o do_v not_o so_o well_o approve_v of_o ourselves_o and_o even_o there_o to_o follow_v the_o
body_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o those_o word_n of_o isaiah_n may_v be_v general_o apply_v from_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n to_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n there_o be_v no_o soundness_n in_o she_o but_o if_o any_o will_v have_v we_o yet_o further_o examine_v the_o other_o circumstance_n they_o will_v find_v that_o they_o all_o concur_v to_o establish_v that_o call_v whereof_o we_o treat_v i_o rank_n in_o this_o place_n all_o those_o extraordinary_a quality_n wherewith_o it_o please_v god_n to_o enrich_v those_o among_o our_o father_n who_o contribute_v most_o of_o all_o to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o reformation_n who_o may_v not_o perceive_v in_o they_o a_o lively_a and_o penetrate_a understanding_n a_o solid_a judgement_n a_o exquisite_a and_o profound_a knowledge_n a_o indefatigable_a propension_n to_o labour_n a_o wonderful_a readiness_n to_o compose_v and_o to_o deliver_v a_o exceed_a exact_a study_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n a_o great_a and_o resolute_a soul_n a_o unshaken_a courage_n a_o upright_a conscience_n a_o sincere_a love_n of_o the_o truth_n a_o ardent_a zeal_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n a_o solid_a piety_n without_o hypocrisy_n and_o without_o pride_n a_o plain_a and_o open_a carriage_n a_o entire_a disengagement_n from_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n a_o admirable_a confidence_n in_o god_n and_o in_o his_o providence_n a_o cordial_a friendship_n to_o all_o good_a man_n and_o the_o great_a aversion_n to_o the_o vice_n profanation_n and_o sophistry_n of_o other_o these_o be_v the_o gift_n and_o talent_n wherewith_o the_o divine_a favour_n honour_v the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o there_o yet_o remain_v the_o lively_a character_n of_o they_o in_o their_o write_n and_o they_o be_v as_o the_o seal_n wherewith_o god_n will_v confirm_v their_o call_n for_o when_o his_o wisdom_n design_n person_n to_o any_o great_a work_n it_o be_v wont_a to_o bestow_v on_o they_o those_o necessary_a qualification_n to_o acquit_v themselves_o in_o it_o and_o we_o may_v say_v without_o fear_n of_o be_v charge_v with_o derogate_a from_o the_o truth_n by_o those_o who_o know_v history_n that_o from_o the_o six_o age_n until_o that_o of_o our_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o the_o space_n of_o more_o than_o nine_o hundred_o year_n there_o can_v not_o be_v find_v any_o space_n of_o time_n so_o fertile_a in_o great_a man_n as_o that_o of_o the_o reformation_n be_v which_o show_v that_o god_n have_v a_o design_n to_o make_v use_n of_o they_o for_o that_o work_n as_o the_o event_n have_v justify_v add_v to_o all_o that_o the_o ardent_a and_o almost_o universal_a desire_n among_o the_o people_n to_o see_v a_o good_a reformation_n spring_v up_o in_o the_o church_n for_o even_o that_o be_v a_o yet_o further_o seal_n to_o the_o call_v of_o the_o reformer_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v a_o testimony_n that_o god_n have_v mark_v out_o that_o age_n wherein_o to_o purge_v his_o floor_n as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v who_o know_v not_o that_o that_o desire_n be_v such_o as_o neither_o the_o artifices_fw-la nor_o the_o violence_n nor_o the_o calumny_n wherewith_o they_o labour_v to_o darken_v the_o reformation_n can_v whole_o put_v a_o stop_n to_o the_o church_n be_v leave_v in_o ignorance_n and_o in_o superstition_n she_o pant_v after_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o have_v be_v for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n hide_v under_o a_o dark_a vail_n and_o that_o general_a disposition_n wherein_o she_o be_v may_v let_v we_o see_v that_o the_o time_n of_o her_o deliverance_n be_v come_v but_o last_o be_v it_o not_o true_a that_o then_o the_o great_a part_n of_o those_o who_o labour_v in_o that_o reformation_n be_v ecclesiastical_a person_n who_o the_o duty_n of_o their_o place_n oblige_v more_o particular_o than_o other_o to_o root_v out_o error_n from_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n to_o purify_v religion_n and_o to_o endeavour_v that_o god_n shall_v be_v worship_v according_a to_o his_o will_n every_o one_o know_v that_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la who_o appear_v the_o first_o in_o that_o great_a work_n be_v not_o only_a priest_n but_o ordinary_a preacher_n also_o the_o one_o at_o wittenburg_n and_o the_o other_o at_o zurich_n and_o that_o the_o former_a be_v professor_n in_o divinity_n and_o they_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o those_o who_o join_v themselves_o to_o they_o to_o advance_v that_o design_n be_v also_o in_o public_a office_n in_o the_o church_n as_o the_o whole_a university_n of_o wittenburg_n a_o very_a great_a number_n of_o priest_n and_o other_o churchman_n with_o bishop_n and_o arch-bishop_n in_o germany_n in_o swedeland_n and_o in_o denmark_n and_o some_o even_o in_o france_n and_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o bishop_n in_o england_n they_o will_v say_v it_o may_v be_v that_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v they_o all_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o have_v no_o more_o either_o any_o public_a call_v or_o lawful_a ministry_n but_o that_o answer_n will_v be_v fallacious_a for_o the_o pope_n have_v excommunicate_v they_o for_o nothing_o else_o but_o that_o business_n of_o the_o reformation_n his_o excommunication_n can_v be_v consider_v no_o otherwise_o then_o as_o diminish_n in_o this_o cause_n without_o a_o obligation_n to_o enter_v upon_o a_o examination_n of_o the_o validity_n of_o his_o thunder_n in_o general_n in_o effect_n if_o they_o do_v their_o duty_n if_o they_o obey_v their_o call_n in_o reform_v themselves_o and_o in_o reform_v their_o flock_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v question_v that_o those_o excommunication_n which_o they_o suffer_v for_o so_o good_a a_o cause_n do_v not_o fall_v of_o right_a upon_o those_o who_o unjust_o pronounce_v they_o and_o that_o not_o only_o what_o our_o reformer_n have_v do_v before_o but_o also_o what_o they_o do_v afterward_o be_v well_o and_o lawful_o do_v who_o can_v deny_v that_o a_o excommunication_n contrary_a to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n shall_v not_o not_o be_v null_a but_o if_o the_o reformation_n be_v just_a and_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o people_n call_v for_o it_o as_o we_o suppose_v they_o do_v in_o this_o dispute_n they_o may_v very_o well_o see_v that_o the_o thunder_n of_o rome_n upon_o this_o subject_a be_v unjust_a and_o by_o consequence_n of_o no_o consideration_n they_o ought_v not_o then_o to_o propound_v thing_n so_o to_o we_o nor_o to_o deny_v the_o first_o reformer_n to_o be_v public_a person_n who_o have_v a_o part_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n and_o who_o for_o that_o reason_n have_v a_o most_o strict_a obligation_n to_o labour_n in_o the_o re-establishment_n of_o its_o purity_n and_o to_o declare_v what_o we_o think_v those_o excommunication_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o far_o from_o diminish_v the_o right_a and_o call_v of_o the_o first_o reformer_n that_o they_o do_v on_o the_o contrary_n confirm_v they_o the_o more_o and_o that_o for_o two_o reason_n the_o one_o in_o that_o they_o make_v they_o see_v more_o and_o more_o that_o they_o can_v hope_v for_o nothing_o on_o the_o part_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o bishop_n of_o its_o side_n from_o whence_o there_o arise_v a_o indispensable_a necessity_n on_o our_o father_n to_o employ_v themselves_o in_o it_o and_o the_o other_o in_o that_o those_o pretend_a excommunication_n furnish_v they_o also_o with_o a_o just_a subject_n of_o lay_v open_a more_o and_o more_o to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n the_o gross_a and_o fundamental_a error_n who_o protection_n the_o pope_n take_v up_o with_o so_o great_a a_o ardour_n to_o which_o i_o add_v that_o as_o much_o as_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o prelate_n of_o their_o party_n oppose_v themselves_o to_o the_o reformation_n so_o much_o they_o lose_v of_o that_o right_n which_o yet_o remain_v to_o they_o in_o that_o public_a ministry_n which_o they_o abuse_v with_o so_o great_a injustice_n and_o that_o very_a thing_n do_v but_o strengthen_v the_o right_n of_o the_o other_o party_n and_o render_v their_o ministry_n more_o public_a and_o more_o lawful_a for_o in_o those_o contest_v that_o divide_v a_o body_n or_o a_o society_n that_o which_o one_o of_o the_o party_n lose_v by_o its_o ill_a conduct_n be_v reassembled_a together_o and_o reunited_a in_o the_o other_o but_o as_o it_o be_v only_o proper_a to_o our_o present_a purpose_n to_o treat_v of_o the_o call_v that_o our_o father_n have_v to_o reform_v themselves_o and_o to_o labour_n to_o reform_v other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v mere_o to_o reject_v error_n and_o to_o excite_v other_o to_o do_v the_o same_o and_o not_o to_o go_v further_a to_o talk_v of_o their_o right_n or_o call_v to_o the_o public_a ministry_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o insist_v more_o upon_o this_o
difference_n which_o we_o have_v with_o they_o concern_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n for_o that_o opinion_n be_v partly_o found_v upon_o this_o that_o absolution_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v a_o judiciary_n act_n and_o that_o in_o that_o respect_n the_o church_n have_v a_o true_a tribunal_n before_o which_o the_o faithful_a be_v bind_v to_o appear_v and_o partly_o upon_o the_o opinion_n that_o the_o penance_n which_o the_o priest_n enjoin_v be_v true_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o divine_a justice_n which_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o undergo_v 8._o last_o it_o be_v from_o the_o same_o source_n that_o the_o difference_n proceed_v which_o we_o have_v with_o they_o concern_v the_o super-abundant_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o which_o they_o will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o faithful_a may_v partake_v and_o whereof_o in_o part_n they_o compose_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n behold_v here_o eight_o controversy_n include_v in_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o first_o act_n of_o our_o justification_n upon_o the_o second_o we_o differ_v about_o the_o foundation_n upon_o which_o the_o right_a that_o god_n give_v we_o to_o life_n eternal_a be_v establish_v or_o if_o you_o will_v about_o the_o proper_a and_o direct_a cause_n in_o consideration_n of_o which_o god_n give_v we_o that_o right_a for_o we_o establish_v it_o alone_o upon_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o virtue_n of_o that_o comunion_n which_o we_o have_v with_o he_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n establish_v it_o upon_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o work_n also_o for_o she_o will_v have_v it_o that_o after_o god_n have_v give_v we_o his_o grace_n by_o which_o we_o do_v good_a work_n we_o true_o inherit_v not_o only_o a_o increase_n of_o grace_n but_o eternal_a life_n and_o even_o a_o increase_n of_o glory_n and_o she_o anathematize_n those_o who_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o 2._o we_o differ_v also_o about_o those_o to_o who_o god_n give_v that_o right_a for_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n give_v it_o only_o to_o his_o elect_n in_o who_o he_o preserve_v it_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o perseverance_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n believe_v that_o he_o give_v it_o also_o to_o divers_a reprobate_n who_o his_o grace_n abandon_v and_o who_o final_o perish_v in_o their_o sin_n upon_o the_o three_o doctrine_n we_o differ_v concern_v the_o nature_n and_o the_o definition_n of_o justify_v faith_n for_o as_o for_o we_o we_o look_v on_o it_o as_o a_o act_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o embrace_n or_o accept_v the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o which_o apply_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n mercy_n make_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o we_o labour_v as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v to_o live_v according_a to_o that_o thought_n but_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n frame_v a_o idea_n of_o that_o faith_n of_o a_o very_a great_a coldness_n and_o negligence_n for_o they_o content_v themselves_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o consent_n that_o we_o yield_v in_o general_a to_o all_o the_o truth_n reveal_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v some_o that_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o say_v that_o faith_n fail_v not_o to_o justify_v we_o although_o it_o shall_v not_o have_v the_o least_o regard_n to_o the_o particular_a mercy_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o we_o can_v understand_v without_o horror_n for_o the_o rest_n when_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o imputation_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o satisfaction_n be_v know_v but_o to_o a_o very_a few_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o that_o also_o be_v of_o the_o application_n that_o we_o make_v of_o they_o to_o ourselves_o by_o the_o internal_a act_n of_o our_o soul_n which_o receive_v they_o when_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o these_o truth_n so_o important_a and_o so_o necessary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o christianity_n be_v almost_o stifle_v by_o that_o great_a multitude_n of_o external_a exercise_n with_o which_o they_o busy_v the_o people_n i_o shall_v say_v nothing_o in_o my_o judgement_n that_o the_o more_o sincere_a person_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v and_o of_o which_o god_n grant_v they_o may_v be_v able_a hereafter_o to_o convince_v i_o of_o a_o falsehood_n in_o that_o respect_n in_o fine_a the_o last_o doctrine_n that_o full_o make_v up_o the_o idea_n of_o our_o justification_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n produce_v of_o itself_o a_o considerable_a controversy_n between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o for_o as_o for_o we_o we_o limit_v ourselves_o to_o the_o good_a work_n to_o which_o our_o justification_n oblige_v we_o and_o which_o god_n have_v enjoin_v we_o without_o go_v any_o further_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n extend_v they_o even_o to_o those_o which_o she_o herself_o command_v for_o the_o pretend_v that_o her_o law_n proper_o and_o direct_o bind_v the_o conscience_n under_o pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o leo_n x._o condemn_a luther_n for_o have_v write_v that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o power_n to_o make_v law_n concern_v manner_n or_o good_a work_n all_o these_o controversy_n that_o natural_o arise_v from_o the_o different_a explication_n which_o they_o give_v of_o the_o tenet_n of_o justification_n let_v we_o sufficient_o see_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la be_v mistake_v if_o he_o think_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o more_o upon_o this_o matter_n then_o difference_n about_o word_n and_o m._n le_fw-fr blanc_n be_v too_o sincere_a and_o too_o learned_a to_o have_v pretend_v to_o deny_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v although_o he_o have_v judicious_o remark_v that_o man_n may_v easy_o equivocate_v upon_o the_o different_a signification_n of_o the_o term_n it_o be_v therefore_o neither_o a_o piece_n of_o rashness_n nor_o impertinency_n that_o our_o first_o reformer_n have_v such_o a_o regard_n to_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n as_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o the_o great_a importance_n in_o religion_n and_o it_o be_v on_o the_o contrary_n most_o just_a that_o have_v see_v that_o doctrine_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o christian_n neglect_v obscure_a and_o deprave_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o set_v themselves_o upon_o the_o re-establish_a of_o it_o chap._n vii_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o objection_n of_o the_o twelve_o and_o thirteen_o chapter_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la to_o understand_v well_o what_o be_v in_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la we_o must_v in_o the_o first_o place_n take_v notice_n of_o the_o design_n he_o propound_v to_o himself_o and_o the_o mean_n he_o make_v use_v of_o to_o reach_v it_o as_o to_o his_o design_n he_o explain_v himself_o in_o the_o very_a title_n of_o the_o chapter_n which_o bear_v this_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o politician_n every_o way_n humane_a that_o appear_v in_o the_o difference_n that_o the_o calvinist_n 12._o have_v have_v with_o the_o lutheran_n give_v a_o right_a to_o reject_v they_o without_o any_o further_a examination_n as_o a_o sort_n of_o man_n without_o any_o conscience_n he_o explain_v himself_o yet_o further_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o discourse_n after_o this_o manner_n it_o have_v be_v demand_v say_v he_o of_o the_o calvinist_n with_o good_a reason_n how_o it_o can_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o if_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o calvin_n have_v receive_v a_o mission_n from_o god_n and_o be_v the_o instrument_n that_o he_o make_v choice_n of_o for_o the_o great_a work_n that_o ever_o be_v which_o be_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o error_n of_o sixteen_o century_n they_o shall_v not_o avoid_v be_v open_o divide_v between_o themselves_o to_o dismember_v themselves_o from_o one_o another_o to_o persecute_v one_o another_o after_o so_o outrageous_a a_o manner_n and_o to_o treat_v one_o another_o as_o the_o declare_a enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o church_n he_o explain_v himself_o also_o in_o another_o place_n where_o he_o speak_v after_o this_o manner_n the_o innocence_n or_o the_o crime_n of_o luther_n equal_o condemn_v the_o calvinist_n either_o for_o have_v declaim_v against_o a_o innocent_a person_n or_o for_o have_v give_v unjust_a praise_n to_o one_o of_o the_o most_o wicked_a man_n that_o ever_o be_v and_o that_o monstrous_a conjunction_n which_o they_o have_v make_v in_o his_o person_n of_o holiness_n with_o the_o most_o detestable_a crime_n be_v a_o evident_a proof_n that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o least_o idea_n of_o christian_a virtue_n nor_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christianity_n see_v yet_o further_o how_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n if_o luther_n be_v a_o instrument_n of_o the_o devil_n a_o wicked_a person_n a_o schismatic_a a_o violent_a and_o passionate_a man_n what_o will_v become_v of_o
to_o correct_v they_o and_o notwithstanding_o to_o enter_v into_o its_o communion_n and_o to_o live_v under_o its_o ministry_n but_o so_o far_o be_v we_o from_o be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o supposition_n of_o this_o nature_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_a there_o be_v nothing_o more_o certain_a than_o this_o truth_n that_o as_o there_o be_v unjust_a rash_a and_o schismatical_a separation_n so_o there_o may_v be_v also_o not_o only_o just_a and_o lawful_a one_o but_o necessary_a and_o indispensable_a one_o also_o so_o the_o primitive_a christian_n withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o jewish_a church_n after_o it_o have_v obstinate_o remain_v in_o its_o unbelief_n and_o afterward_o the_o orthodox_n in_o the_o first_o century_n hold_v no_o communion_n with_o the_o valentinian_o nor_o with_o the_o manichee_n nor_o in_o general_a with_o those_o heretic_n who_o disturb_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o their_o error_n nay_o when_o the_o arian_n have_v even_o make_v themselves_o master_n of_o the_o synod_n and_o church_n there_o be_v a_o actual_a separation_n make_v of_o a_o very_a great_a number_n of_o person_n as_o well_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o clergy_n as_o that_o of_o the_o people_n who_o will_v not_o have_v any_o communion_n with_o they_o and_o who_o endure_v upon_o that_o account_n all_o sort_n of_o persecution_n therefore_o also_o it_o be_v that_o s._n hilary_n bishop_n of_o poitiers_n earnest_o exhort_v the_o bishop_n and_o the_o orthodox_n people_n by_o a_o public_a letter_n that_o he_o address_v to_o they_o the_o name_n of_o peace_n say_v he_o to_o they_o be_v indeed_o very_o specious_a and_o the_o mere_a appearance_n of_o unity_n have_v arianos_fw-la something_o splendid_a in_o it_o but_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o church_n and_o the_o gospel_n acknowledge_v no_o other_o peace_n than_o that_o which_o come_v from_o jesus_n christ_n that_o which_o he_o give_v to_o his_o apostle_n before_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o that_o which_o he_o leave_v in_o trust_n with_o they_o by_o his_o eternal_a command_n when_o he_o be_v about_o to_o leave_v they_o it_o be_v this_o peace_n which_o we_o have_v take_v care_n to_o seek_v when_o it_o have_v be_v lose_v and_o to_o re-establish_a when_o it_o have_v be_v disturb_v and_o to_o preserve_v after_o we_o have_v find_v it_o again_o but_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o time_n and_o the_o minister_n or_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o so_o great_a a_o good_a nor_o that_o we_o shall_v so_o much_o as_o partake_v of_o it_o they_o have_v their_o peace_n which_o they_o boast_v of_o which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o unity_n of_o impiety_n while_o they_o carry_v themselves_o not_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o as_o the_o prelate_n of_o antichrist_n and_o about_o the_o end_n of_o his_o letter_n i_o exhort_v you_o say_v he_o that_o you_o take_v heed_n of_o antichrist_n be_v not_o deceive_v by_o a_o foolish_a love_n of_o wall_n nor_o respect_v the_o church_n more_o on_o roof_n and_o in_o house_n nor_o strive_v no_o more_o on_o such_o frivolous_a consideration_n for_o the_o name_n of_o peace_n as_o for_o my_o self_n i_o find_v more_o certainty_n in_o the_o mountain_n in_o the_o forest_n in_o the_o lake_n in_o prison_n in_o gulf_n for_o there_o it_o be_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n animate_v the_o prophet_n separate_a therefore_o yourselves_o from_o auxentius_n who_o be_v a_o angel_n of_o satan_n a_o enemy_n to_o christ_n a_o open_a persecutor_n a_o violator_n of_o the_o faith_n who_o make_v a_o deceitful_a profession_n of_o the_o faith_n before_o the_o emperor_n in_o which_o he_o join_v blasphemy_n to_o that_o deceit_n let_v he_o assemble_v as_o many_o synod_n as_o he_o please_v against_o i_o let_v he_o make_v i_o be_v declare_v a_o heretic_n as_o he_o have_v often_o already_o do_v let_v he_o proscribe_v i_o by_o public_a authority_n let_v he_o stir_v up_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o great_a man_n against_o i_o as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v he_o can_v never_o be_v any_o other_o to_o i_o than_o a_o devil_n since_o he_o be_v a_o arian_n i_o shall_v never_o have_v peace_n but_o with_o those_o who_o follow_v the_o decree_n of_o our_o nicene_n father_n will_v anathematise_v the_o arian_n and_o acknowledge_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v true_o god_n s._n epiphanius_n also_o relate_v that_o before_o the_o synod_n of_o seleucid_n 73_o wherein_o arianism_n be_v establish_v many_o people_n who_o find_v themselves_o to_o be_v under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o arian_n bishop_n remain_v firm_a in_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o set_v up_o other_o bishop_n themselves_o and_o the_o history_n of_o socrates_n theodoret_n and_o sozomen_n may_v teach_v we_o that_o while_o the_o arian_n possess_v the_o temple_n and_o the_o see_v of_o the_o church_n the_o orthodox_n hold_v their_o assembly_n apart_o in_o the_o field_n as_o well_o as_o in_o private_a house_n with_o the_o same_o judgement_n s._n ambrose_n teach_v that_o jesus_n 9_o christ_n alone_o be_v he_o from_o who_o we_o ought_v never_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o and_o to_o who_o we_o ought_v to_o say_v lord_n to_o who_o shall_v we_o go_v thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n that_o above_o all_o thing_n the_o faith_n of_o a_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v regard_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o hold_v it_o there_o if_o jesus_n christ_n dwell_v there_o but_o if_o a_o people_n may_v be_v find_v to_o be_v there_o who_o be_v violator_n of_o the_o faith_n or_o that_o a_o heretical_a pastor_n have_v pollute_v that_o habitation_n we_o ought_v to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o heretic_n and_o to_o avoid_v all_o commerce_n with_o that_o synagogue_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o every_o church_n that_o reject_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o do_v not_o preserve_v the_o fundamental_o of_o the_o apostle_n preach_v without_o fear_n lest_o its_o communion_n shall_v brand_v we_o with_o some_o note_n of_o perfidiousness_n there_o can_v not_o therefore_o be_v a_o more_o unreasonable_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n than_o to_o prepossess_v one_o self_n in_o general_n against_o all_o manner_n of_o separation_n for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o communion_n of_o man_n be_v no_o otherwise_o desirable_a than_o as_o it_o can_v consist_v with_o the_o communion_n of_o god_n and_o that_o when_o that_o of_o man_n shall_v be_v find_v to_o be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n and_o our_o own_o salvation_n which_o be_v the_o only_a end_n of_o a_o religious_a society_n we_o ought_v no_o long_o to_o hesitate_n about_o our_o separation_n but_o to_o make_v out_o this_o truth_n yet_o a_o little_a more_o clear_a we_o need_v but_o to_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n what_o we_o have_v already_o say_v in_o the_o first_o part_n that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v consider_v either_o in_o respect_n of_o its_o internal_a state_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o society_n of_o the_o true_o faithful_a and_o the_o true_a elect_a of_o god_n without_o any_o mixture_n of_o hypocrite_n and_o the_o worldly_a pure_a throughout_o as_o she_o be_v in_o god_n sight_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o its_o external_n state_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v a_o society_n which_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o religion_n include_v a_o sufficient_o great_a number_n of_o the_o hypocrite_n and_o worldly_a who_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o be_v of_o the_o church_n but_o in_o appearance_n only_o that_o distinction_n be_v evident_a enough_o of_o itself_o not_o to_o need_v any_o proof_n and_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o will_v not_o oppose_v it_o but_o although_o they_o do_v not_o oppose_v that_o distinction_n yet_o they_o never_o fail_v of_o confound_v both_o those_o respect_n for_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o promise_n that_o god_n have_v make_v concern_v the_o perpetual_a subsistence_n of_o his_o church_n where_o it_o will_v be_v just_a to_o refer_v they_o to_o the_o church_n only_o as_o make_v up_o of_o the_o true_o faithful_a since_o to_o speak_v proper_o god_n look_v upon_o they_o alone_o as_o his_o true_a church_n they_o refer_v they_o to_o the_o church_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v mix_v with_o the_o worldly_a and_o hypocrite_n and_o when_o the_o contest_v be_v about_o establish_v the_o duty_n to_o which_o a_o religious_a society_n engage_v we_o where_o it_o will_v be_v just_a to_o consider_v the_o church_n as_o mingle_v with_o the_o good_a and_o the_o wicked_a the_o faithful_a and_o the_o worldly_a such_o as_o it_o appear_v to_o we_o they_o consider_v it_o as_o it_o be_v pure_a and_o without_o any_o mixture_n of_o hypocrite_n such_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o
but_o three_o sort_n of_o person_n only_o to_o be_v in_o its_o communion_n the_o faithful_a the_o catechumeni_fw-la and_o the_o penitent_n but_o as_o for_o those_o who_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n or_o practise_v a_o false_a worship_n it_o never_o have_v any_o union_n with_o they_o not_o only_o the_o ancient_n have_v no_o communion_n with_o they_o but_o to_o show_v how_o necessary_a and_o indispensable_a they_o judge_v a_o separation_n from_o they_o to_o be_v they_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o refuse_v their_o communion_n with_o the_o orthodox_n themselves_o when_o either_o by_o surprise_n or_o weakness_n or_o some_o other_o interest_n they_o have_v receive_v heretic_n into_o their_o communion_n although_o as_o to_o themselves_o they_o have_v keep_v their_o faith_n in_o its_o purity_n we_o find_v in_o the_o life_n of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n that_o his_o father_n who_o be_v also_o call_v gregory_n and_o who_o be_v bishop_n of_o nazianzen_n before_o he_o have_v be_v deceive_v by_o a_o fallacious_a write_n and_o have_v give_v his_o communion_n to_o the_o arian_n all_o the_o monk_n of_o his_o diocese_n with_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o church_n separate_v themselves_o from_o he_o although_o they_o well_o know_v that_o he_o have_v not_o change_v his_o mind_n nor_o embrace_v heresy_n and_o even_o the_o orthodox_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n refuse_v to_o hold_v communion_n with_o pope_n felix_n as_o theodoret_n tell_v we_o although_o he_o entire_o hold_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a because_o he_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o arian_n this_o i_o mention_v not_o absolute_o to_o approve_v of_o that_o carriage_n but_o only_o to_o show_v how_o far_o their_o aversion_n go_v heretofore_o which_o they_o have_v for_o hold_v communion_n with_o heretic_n those_o who_o be_v prepossess_v against_o all_o sort_n of_o separation_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n aught_o to_o remember_v that_o the_o obligation_n that_o lie_v upon_o they_o to_o hold_v communion_n with_o those_o with_o who_o they_o be_v external_o join_v be_v not_o without_o its_o bound_n and_o measure_n we_o be_v join_v together_o under_o certain_a condition_n which_o be_v principal_o the_o profession_n of_o a_o pure_a faith_n or_o at_o least_o such_o as_o be_v free_a from_o all_o damnable_a error_n a_o worship_n free_v from_o all_o that_o which_o be_v opposite_a to_o the_o essence_n of_o piety_n in_o a_o word_n a_o public_a ministry_n under_o which_o we_o may_v work_v out_o our_o own_o salvation_n while_o these_o condition_n remain_v they_o make_v the_o communion_n subsist_v but_o when_o they_o fail_v the_o communion_n fail_v also_o and_o there_o be_v a_o just_a ground_n for_o a_o separation_n provide_v we_o observe_v these_o necessary_a caution_n they_o can_v say_v in_o this_o case_n that_o we_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o church_n nor_o that_o we_o forsake_v her_o communion_n or_o that_o we_o break_v her_o unity_n for_o the_o forsake_a party_n be_v true_o such_o as_o we_o suppose_v it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v any_o more_o look_v on_o as_o the_o church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o only_o as_o a_o party_n of_o the_o worldly_a who_o be_v before_o mingle_v with_o the_o true_o faithful_a and_o who_o through_o their_o obstinacy_n in_o their_o error_n and_o false_a worship_n have_v discover_v themselves_o and_o have_v themselves_o tear_v off_o the_o vail_n which_o as_o yet_o confound_v they_o after_o a_o manner_n with_o the_o other_o the_o orthodox_n in_o the_o first_o age_n do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n when_o they_o will_v not_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o valentinian_o the_o marcionite_n the_o montanist_n the_o manichee_n and_o the_o other_o heterodox_n of_o those_o time_n as_o i_o have_v note_v already_o no_o more_o than_o those_o who_o with_o so_o much_o constancy_n and_o resolution_n refuse_v to_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o arrian_n we_o ought_v not_o therefore_o present_o to_o condemn_v all_o kind_n of_o separation_n and_o since_o there_o be_v such_o kind_n of_o it_o as_o be_v necessary_a just_a and_o lawful_a as_o there_o be_v such_o as_o be_v unjust_a and_o rash_a it_o will_v be_v the_o extremity_n of_o folly_n to_o judge_v of_o all_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n without_o any_o difference_n or_o distinction_n the_o roman_a church_n herself_o which_o have_v sometime_o cut_v off_o whole_a nation_n as_o france_n and_o germany_n from_o her_o communion_n which_o may_v have_v be_v see_v to_o have_v be_v so_o often_o divide_v into_o divers_a party_n whereof_o one_o have_v excommunicate_v the_o other_o will_v not_o it_o may_v be_v free_o suffer_v that_o we_o shall_v treat_v of_o matter_n with_o this_o confusion_n so_o that_o dispute_v at_o present_a about_o our_o separation_n with_o she_o we_o shall_v demand_v no_o unjust_a or_o unreasonable_a thing_n when_o we_o tell_v they_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o examine_v of_o what_o nature_n that_o separation_n be_v to_o consider_v the_o reason_n and_o wise_o to_o weigh_v the_o circumstance_n for_o if_o our_o father_n separate_v themselves_o upon_o light_a ground_n and_o without_o have_v any_o sufficient_a cause_n if_o they_o be_v even_o under_o circumstance_n which_o ought_v to_o have_v bind_v they_o to_o have_v remain_v unite_v with_o the_o other_o party_n which_o be_v not_o for_o a_o reformation_n we_o shall_v agree_v with_o all_o our_o heart_n to_o condemn_v they_o but_o if_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o reason_n which_o they_o have_v be_v just_a sufficient_a and_o necessary_a if_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n place_n person_n that_o can_v hinder_v they_o from_o do_v that_o which_o they_o do_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o instead_o of_o condemn_v they_o we_o shall_v bless_v they_o we_o shall_v think_v ourselves_o happy_a in_o follow_v their_o footstep_n and_o as_o for_o the_o reproach_n and_o venomous_a accusation_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la and_o such_o like_a we_o shall_v bear_v they_o with_o patience_n look_v on_o they_o as_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o blind_a passion_n let_v we_o therefore_o begin_v to_o make_v that_o examination_n by_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o separation_n every_o one_o know_v what_o the_o matter_n that_o divide_v we_o be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o either_o point_n of_o mere_a discipline_n such_o as_o that_o for_o which_o victor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n separate_v his_o church_n from_o those_o of_o asia_n who_o shall_v keep_v the_o feast_n of_o easter_n on_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o moon_n nor_o mere_o question_v of_o the_o school_n which_o consist_v in_o nothing_o but_o term_n remote_a from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o vulgar_a as_o that_o which_o they_o call_v trium_fw-la capitulorum_fw-la which_o raise_v so_o many_o trouble_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n and_o pope_n vigilius_n nor_o in_o mere_a personal_a interest_n such_o as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o schism_n of_o anti-popes_n nor_o pure_o in_o personal_a crime_n or_o accusation_n as_o in_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n nor_o even_o in_o a_o general_a corruption_n of_o manner_n although_o that_o be_v extreme_o great_a in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o father_n the_o article_n that_o separate_v we_o be_v point_n that_o according_a to_o we_o essential_o disturb_v the_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o be_v unite_v to_o jesus_n christ_n point_n which_o essential_o alter_v the_o worship_n that_o we_o owe_v to_o god_n which_o essential_o deprave_v the_o source_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o which_o corrupt_v both_o the_o external_a and_o internal_a mean_n of_o our_o obtain_n grace_n and_o glory_n in_o a_o word_n they_o be_v such_o point_n as_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v whole_o incompatible_a with_o salvation_n and_o which_o by_o consequence_n hinder_v we_o from_o be_v able_a to_o give_v it_o the_o title_n or_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o true_a church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o a_o party_n which_o be_v obstinate_a in_o the_o profession_n and_o practice_n of_o they_o and_o which_o will_v force_v we_o to_o be_v so_o too_o i_o confess_v that_o we_o can_v say_v that_o our_o controversy_n be_v all_o of_o that_o importance_n there_o be_v some_o undoubted_o which_o be_v of_o lesser_a weight_n and_o force_n which_o it_o be_v fit_v for_o they_o to_o reform_v themselves_o in_o but_o which_o notwithstanding_o will_v not_o have_v give_v alone_o a_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n in_o this_o rank_n i_o place_v the_o question_n of_o the_o limbus_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o of_o the_o local_a descent_n of_o jesus_n christ_n into_o hell_n that_o of_o the_o distinction_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a right_n that_o of_o the_o keep_n of_o lent_n and_o some_o other_o of_o that_o nature_n where_o there_o may_v have_v be_v see_v error_n and_o superstition_n enough_o to_o be_v correct_v but_o which_o will_v not_o have_v
and_o another_o i_o be_o of_o christ_n be_v christ_n say_v he_o divide_v be_v paul_n crucify_v for_o you_o or_o be_v you_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n which_o imply_v this_o that_o we_o be_v all_o immediate_o unite_v to_o jesus_n christ_n because_o it_o be_v 1._o he_o only_o who_o die_v for_o we_o and_o in_o his_o name_n alone_o that_o we_o be_v baptize_v and_o to_o pretend_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v join_v to_o jesus_n christ_n by_o his_o minister_n be_v to_o divide_v he_o into_o as_o many_o party_n or_o into_o as_o many_o sect_n as_o there_o be_v minister_n but_o it_o manifest_o follow_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o be_v no_o further_o unite_v with_o their_o pastor_n than_o as_o it_o shall_v appear_v to_o they_o that_o their_o pastor_n be_v to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o separate_v from_o they_o when_o it_o shall_v appear_v to_o they_o that_o they_o themselves_o be_v separate_v from_o he_o and_o that_o they_o will_v separate_v the_o flock_n which_o they_o have_v commit_v to_o they_o this_o be_v what_o the_o light_n of_o common_a sense_n dictate_v without_o further_a reason_n for_o to_o what_o good_a will_v the_o communion_n of_o those_o pretend_a pastor_n tend_v howsoever_o invest_v they_o shall_v be_v in_o title_n and_o dignity_n without_o that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v of_o their_o communion_n with_o they_o i_o must_v also_o say_v of_o their_o dependence_n on_o they_o that_o which_o the_o faithful_a have_v upon_o jesus_n christ_n be_v immediate_a and_o absolute_a and_o that_o which_o they_o have_v on_o their_o pastor_n be_v mediate_v and_o conditional_a our_o soul_n and_o our_o conscience_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o they_o to_o dispose_v of_o at_o their_o will_n and_o pleasure_n in_o this_o respect_n we_o belong_v to_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o who_o have_v purchase_v we_o at_o the_o price_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o who_o govern_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o his_o word_n the_o pastor_n be_v only_a minister_n interpreter_n or_o the_o herald_n who_o make_v we_o to_o understand_v his_o voice_n and_o all_o the_o dependence_n which_o we_o have_v on_o they_o be_v found_v upon_o that_o which_o both_o they_o and_o we_o have_v upon_o jesus_n christ_n our_o sovereign_a lord_n of_o which_o it_o be_v both_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o rule_n and_o measure_n we_o ought_v therefore_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o while_o they_o shall_v act_v as_o his_o minister_n and_o his_o interpreter_n while_o their_o action_n and_o their_o government_n bear_v the_o character_n of_o his_o authority_n but_o as_o those_o minister_n be_v man_n who_o may_v abuse_v their_o office_n and_o act_n against_o their_o head_n if_o it_o happen_v that_o the_o character_n of_o the_o divine_a authority_n which_o subject_n we_o to_o they_o do_v not_o appear_v in_o their_o word_n if_o there_o appear_v a_o contrary_a character_n there_o if_o instead_o of_o lead_v we_o to_o jesus_n christ_n they_o turn_v we_o from_o he_o if_o they_o will_v govern_v as_o lord_n and_o not_o as_o minister_n if_o they_o attribute_v that_o absolute_a obedience_n to_o themselves_o which_o we_o own_o to_o none_o beside_o our_o saviour_n in_o a_o word_n if_o to_o depend_v on_o they_o we_o must_v violate_v the_o dependence_n which_o we_o have_v on_o jesus_n christ_n can_v they_o then_o say_v that_o we_o can_v and_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o separate_v from_o they_o and_o to_o renounce_v a_o unjust_a government_n if_o they_o will_v decide_v this_o question_n by_o the_o scripture_n st._n paul_n tell_v we_o that_o if_o he_o himself_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v to_o 1._o we_o another_o gospel_n than_o that_o which_o he_o have_v preach_v he_o shall_v be_v accurse_v he_o say_v that_o upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o some_o false_a teacher_n that_o trouble_v the_o church_n of_o galatia_n and_o speak_v only_o of_o they_o one_o will_v think_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v content_v to_o have_v let_v his_o anathema_n fall_v upon_o those_o particular_a teacher_n that_o may_v err_v and_o who_o have_v not_o so_o great_a a_o authority_n but_o that_o one_o may_v very_o well_o separate_v himself_o from_o they_o when_o they_o shall_v happen_v to_o prevaricate_v but_o to_o take_v away_o all_o pretence_n of_o distinction_n and_o wrangle_a dispute_n he_o make_v a_o most_o express_a choice_n of_o two_o of_o the_o great_a authority_n that_o be_v among_o creature_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o a_o apostle_n the_o only_a two_o create_v authority_n to_o which_o god_n have_v communicate_v the_o favour_n of_o infallibility_n and_o he_o have_v enjoin_v we_o to_o anathematise_v they_o if_o it_o shall_v happen_v that_o they_o shall_v preach_v another_o gospel_n than_o that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n be_v uncapable_a of_o ever_o commit_v that_o sin_n we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o he_o himself_o will_v never_o have_v commit_v it_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o turn_v his_o discourse_n upon_o himself_o and_o upon_o the_o angel_n and_o be_v not_o this_o to_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o there_o be_v no_o create_a authority_n either_o in_o the_o heaven_n or_o upon_o the_o earth_n upon_o which_o we_o ought_v absolute_o to_o depend_v and_o from_o which_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o separate_v in_o case_n it_o shall_v turn_v we_o from_o jesus_n christ_n let_v they_o tell_v we_o whether_o the_o dependence_n that_o the_o people_n owe_v to_o the_o body_n of_o their_o ordinary_a pastor_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o those_o who_o possess_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n who_o may_v have_v be_v very_o ill_o choose_v who_o may_v have_v intrude_v themselves_o by_o very_o bad_a way_n who_o may_v be_v carry_v out_o therein_o to_o all_o the_o passion_n and_o disorder_n of_o humane_a nature_n whether_o i_o say_v the_o dependence_n which_o they_o owe_v to_o they_o be_v strong_a and_o more_o inviolable_a than_o that_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v for_o a_o apostle_n and_o such_o a_o apostle_n as_o st._n paul_n and_o even_o for_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n if_o he_o shall_v become_v a_o preacher_n this_o latter_a dependence_n notwithstanding_o be_v not_o absolute_a it_o may_v be_v lawful_o break_v upon_o a_o certain_a case_n who_o will_v take_v the_o boldness_n to_o say_v after_o that_o that_o it_o can_v and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v do_v in_o a_o like_a case_n but_o if_o to_o the_o scripture_n we_o will_v add_v experience_n that_o will_v teach_v we_o that_o there_o have_v be_v sometime_o those_o season_n in_o which_o good_a man_n have_v be_v force_v to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o their_o pastor_n for_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o seven_o thousand_o which_o in_o elias_n time_n preserve_v their_o purity_n against_o the_o idolatry_n whereinto_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n have_v fall_v who_o according_a to_o all_o that_o appear_v live_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n of_o their_o idolatrous_a pastor_n at_o least_o in_o a_o negative_a separation_n we_o need_v but_o to_o turn_v our_o eye_n to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o orthodox_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n for_o there_o be_v two_o action_n evident_a in_o that_o history_n one_o that_o arianism_n have_v invade_v the_o body_n of_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n and_o the_o other_o that_o those_o among_o the_o orthodox_n who_o be_v of_o any_o zeal_n and_o courage_n separate_v themselves_o from_o that_o infect_a body_n and_o will_v not_o own_v they_o for_o true_a pastor_n while_o they_o shall_v remain_v in_o heresy_n the_o first_o of_o these_o action_n be_v justify_v by_o almost_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o proof_n take_v out_o either_o from_o history_n or_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_n for_o before_o the_o death_n of_o constantine_n the_o arian_n who_o have_v be_v condemn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a fall_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o st._n athanasius_n and_o some_o time_n after_o they_o banish_v he_o as_o far_o as_o treves_n this_o be_v their_o first_o victory_n but_o they_o do_v not_o stop_v there_o they_o get_v over_o to_o their_o side_n the_o spirit_n of_o constance_n after_o the_o death_n of_o constantine_n who_o remain_v sole_a emperor_n employ_v all_o his_o authority_n and_o the_o arian_n all_o their_o artifices_fw-la to_o establish_v arianism_n every_o where_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o bishop_n fall_v either_o under_o their_o violence_n or_o seduction_n divers_a council_n be_v assemble_v and_o many_o form_n of_o faith_n lay_v down_o there_o which_o all_o tend_v to_o set_v up_o the_o dogm_n of_o arius_n some_o more_o open_o and_o other_o more_o covert_o those_o among_o the_o bishop_n who_o make_v any_o opposition_n be_v cruel_o persecute_v depose_v from_o their_o place_n send_v into_o exile_n and_o treat_v
council_n of_o ariminum_n and_o of_o constantinople_n which_o include_v all_o the_o east_n and_o all_o the_o west_n and_o if_o they_o have_v have_v no_o more_o but_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n of_o their_o actual_o govern_v pastor_n that_o they_o may_v have_v cleaved_a to_o a_o synod_n which_o be_v past_a and_o go_v it_o be_v therefore_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v contest_v and_o that_o of_o the_o error_n that_o be_v opposite_a to_o it_o which_o make_v the_o separation_n and_o not_o the_o mere_a authority_n of_o the_o nicene_n father_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o s._n augustine_n dispute_v against_o maximinus_n a_o arian_n will_v that_o they_o shall_v set_v aside_o as_o well_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a as_o that_o of_o ariminum_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v only_o contend_v about_o the_o thing_n themselves_o not_o but_o that_o sometime_o the_o orthodox_n do_v set_v before_o they_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o dispute_n where_o one_o will_v neglect_v no_o advantage_n for_o its_o be_v ever_o so_o small_a but_o it_o be_v as_o a_o little_a help_n and_o not_o as_o the_o essential_a reason_n of_o their_o separation_n which_o be_v always_o take_v from_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o that_o difference_n be_v very_o frivolous_a if_o they_o say_v last_o that_o the_o point_n that_o be_v controvert_v then_o be_v one_o of_o a_o far_o great_a importance_n than_o those_o upon_o which_o our_o father_n separate_v themselves_o i_o answer_v that_o indeed_o the_o article_n of_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o fundamental_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n but_o that_o do_v not_o hinder_v that_o those_o that_o be_v controvert_v between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o shall_v not_o also_o be_v of_o the_o great_a importance_n to_o salvation_n and_o sufficient_a to_o cause_v a_o separation_n and_o when_o they_o will_v make_v the_o justice_n or_o injustice_n of_o we_o to_o depend_v on_o that_o they_o must_v quit_v all_o that_o vain_a dispute_n of_o prejudices_fw-la and_o go_v on_o to_o the_o discussion_n of_o the_o foundation_n itself_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la must_v not_o take_v it_o ill_o that_o in_o endeavour_v to_o decide_v the_o question_n concern_v the_o right_a of_o the_o separation_n of_o our_o father_n i_o make_v use_v here_o of_o his_o own_o proper_a testimony_n for_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n surprise_v enough_o that_o write_v in_o his_o eight_o and_o nine_o chapter_n in_o which_o he_o will_v he_o say_v convince_v we_o of_o schism_n without_o enter_v upon_o a_o discussion_n either_o of_o our_o doctrine_n 162._o or_o our_o mission_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v remember_v what_o he_o himself_o have_v just_a before_o say_v in_o the_o seven_o first_o of_o all_o he_o there_o propose_v this_o difficulty_n as_o on_o our_o side_n if_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v real_o fall_v into_o error_n as_o we_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o it_o to_o do_v if_o it_o drive_v away_o the_o true_o faithful_a from_o its_o bosom_n if_o it_o persecute_v 153._o they_o must_v those_o true_o faithful_a needs_o be_v deprive_v of_o all_o external_a worship_n in_o religion_n must_v they_o needs_o cleave_v to_o the_o church_n to_o perish_v with_o they_o since_o we_o suppose_v that_o it_o reside_v in_o they_o alone_o be_v it_o not_o against_o the_o divine_a providence_n that_o the_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n the_o true_a heir_n of_o heaven_n can_v form_v a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o god_n have_v not_o leave_v any_o mean_n to_o provide_v against_o so_o strange_a a_o inconvenience_n he_o answer_v plain_o that_o indeed_o that_o inconvenience_n be_v exceed_o great_a but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o god_n shall_v have_v provide_v against_o it_o by_o remedy_n because_o he_o have_v resolve_v to_o hinder_v it_o from_o ever_o fall_v out_o in_o always_o preserve_v the_o true_a ministry_n in_o his_o church_n so_o that_o it_o can_v never_o be_v in_o a_o necessity_n of_o be_v reestablish_v and_o that_o very_a thing_n be_v a_o certain_a mark_n that_o that_o inconvenience_n can_v never_o happen_v in_o that_o god_n have_v not_o provide_v any_o remedy_n for_o it_o he_o say_v that_o so_o it_o be_v that_o our_o minister_n ought_v to_o conclude_v and_o not_o to_o conclude_v as_o they_o do_v in_o suppose_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n may_v fall_v into_o ruin_n that_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o establishment_n of_o a_o new_a ministry_n since_o immediate_o after_o he_o add_v but_o if_o the_o adhaesion_n which_o they_o have_v to_o their_o sentiment_n hinder_v they_o from_o come_v to_o agree_v to_o this_o consequence_n they_o ought_v rather_o to_o conclude_v that_o those_o pretend_v true_o faithful_a must_v remain_v in_o that_o state_n without_o pastor_n and_o without_o any_o external_a worship_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v rather_o expect_v that_o god_n shall_v raise_v up_o some_o extraordinary_o and_o with_o visible_a mark_n of_o their_o mission_n than_o to_o usurp_v to_o themselves_o a_o right_n of_o create_v minister_n and_o pastor_n and_o give_v they_o power_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n we_o have_v already_o show_v he_o and_o we_o shall_v yet_o further_o show_v he_o in_o the_o end_n that_o it_o be_v not_o without_o reason_n that_o we_o suppose_v that_o the_o ministry_n may_v be_v corrupt_v in_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v show_v he_o also_o that_o the_o consequence_n which_o we_o draw_v from_o it_o concern_v the_o re-establish_a of_o the_o ministry_n be_v just_a and_o right_a and_o that_o a_o faithful_a people_n have_v a_o right_n in_o that_o case_n to_o create_v their_o minister_n and_o their_o pastor_n and_o to_o give_v they_o power_n to_o govern_v their_o church_n and_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n but_o as_o we_o be_v only_o dispute_v at_o present_a about_o know_v whether_o we_o may_v separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n when_o they_o be_v fall_v into_o error_n incompatible_a with_o our_o salvation_n and_o when_o they_o will_v force_v the_o people_n to_o profess_v the_o same_o error_n it_o shall_v suffice_v at_o present_a to_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la come_v to_o agree_v that_o when_o person_n be_v persuade_v that_o the_o body_n of_o those_o who_o possess_v the_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n be_v fall_v into_o error_n and_o when_o it_o drive_v away_o from_o its_o bosom_n and_o persecute_v those_o who_o maintain_v the_o truth_n they_o may_v remain_v separate_v without_o acknowledge_v that_o body_n for_o their_o pastor_n and_o without_o assist_v in_o their_o external_a worship_n provide_v that_o they_o do_v not_o make_v other_o minister_n but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o this_o be_v precise_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o right_n of_o that_o separation_n about_o which_o the_o question_n at_o present_a be_v who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o be_v at_o least_o in_o that_o respect_n a_o discharge_v our_o father_n from_o the_o accusation_n of_o schism_n and_o to_o declare_v they_o further_o innocent_a of_o that_o crime_n which_o he_o will_v design_v to_o lay_v to_o their_o charge_n at_o last_o our_o father_n do_v not_o collect_v that_o consequence_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la they_o do_v not_o conclude_v that_o the_o ministry_n must_v be_v incorruptible_a in_o the_o church_n in_o that_o which_o it_o have_v of_o humane_a in_o it_o this_o be_v not_o a_o place_n to_o dispute_v whether_o they_o adhere_v too_o much_o to_o their_o own_o opinion_n where_o because_o that_o in_o effect_n they_o judge_v well_o that_o manner_n of_o reason_v be_v pernicious_a howsoever_o it_o be_v they_o have_v conclude_v quite_o otherwise_o they_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o body_n of_o those_o who_o possess_v the_o ordinary_a ministry_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v fall_v not_o only_o into_o a_o error_n but_o into_o many_o and_o into_o such_o as_o be_v contrary_a to_o man_n salvation_n that_o it_o be_v guilty_a of_o opinionativeness_n in_o maintain_v they_o that_o it_o do_v impose_v a_o necessity_n upon_o all_o to_o profess_v they_o that_o it_o drive_v away_o from_o its_o bosom_n those_o who_o refuse_v that_o obedience_n it_o be_v upon_o this_o that_o they_o separate_v themselves_o from_o they_o not_o acknowledge_v they_o any_o more_o for_o their_o pastor_n and_o assist_v no_o further_o in_o their_o external_a worship_n thus_o far_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la do_v not_o condemn_v they_o he_o will_v only_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v remain_v throughout_o without_o pastor_n and_o without_o external_a worship_n we_o shall_v see_v in_o its_o place_n whether_o
that_o every_o society_n which_o have_v not_o that_o extension_n be_v not_o the_o church_n so_o that_o this_o reason_n be_v always_o sound_a your_o society_n be_v shut_v up_o in_o a_o little_a part_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v by_o this_o principle_n that_o s._n augustine_n have_v dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n and_o convince_v they_o of_o schism_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o eight_o chapter_n in_o the_o nine_o he_o labour_v to_o apply_v these_o general_a maxim_n to_o our_o separation_n and_o 1._o he_o say_v that_o our_o communion_n be_v not_o spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n any_o more_o than_o that_o of_o the_o donatist_n and_o that_o not_o have_v that_o visible_a extension_n which_o be_v the_o perpetual_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o and_o by_o consequence_n that_o we_o be_v all_o schismatic_n 2._o he_o say_v we_o carry_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o donatist_n much_o high_o than_o those_o schismatic_n stretch_v it_o for_o as_o for_o they_o they_o do_v not_o say_v that_o there_o ever_o be_v a_o time_n in_o which_o the_o church_n have_v whole_o fall_v into_o apostasic_a and_o that_o they_o except_v the_o communion_n of_o donatus_n but_o as_o for_o we_o we_o will_v have_v it_o that_o there_o have_v be_v whole_a age_n in_o which_o all_o the_o world_n have_v general_o apostatise_v and_o lose_v the_o faith_n and_o treasure_n of_o salvation_n 3._o he_o labour_v to_o show_v that_o the_o society_n of_o the_o berengarian_o of_o the_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n etc._n etc._n in_o who_o he_o say_v we_o shut_v up_o the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v this_o catholic_n church_n of_o which_o s._n augustine_n speak_v and_o last_o he_o conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o we_o be_v schismatic_n and_o by_o consequence_n out_o of_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n before_o we_o enter_v upon_o the_o particular_a examination_n of_o the_o proposition_n whereof_o this_o objection_n be_v make_v up_o it_o will_v be_v good_a to_o note_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o new_a in_o all_o that_o and_o that_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o that_o some_o mark_n of_o visible_a extension_n that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o controversial_a writer_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o propound_v when_o they_o will_v give_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n there_o be_v this_o only_a difference_n to_o be_v find_v in_o it_o that_o the_o other_o labour_n to_o ground_v this_o upon_o what_o they_o produce_v out_o of_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o scripture_n whereas_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la ground_n his_o argument_n upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o some_o father_n but_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v true_a that_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o african_a father_n dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n shall_v have_v press_v this_o visible_a extension_n of_o the_o church_n too_o much_o and_o urge_v it_o further_o than_o they_o ought_v will_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la believe_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o hold_v all_o those_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n have_v advance_v in_o their_o dispute_n for_o infallible_a and_o all_o their_o reason_n and_o hypothesis_n to_o have_v be_v so_o do_v he_o not_o know_v what_o theodoret_n himself_o who_o be_v a_o father_n have_v note_v concern_v some_o of_o 3_o those_o who_o be_v before_o he_o that_o the_o vehemence_n of_o disputation_n have_v make_v they_o fall_v into_o excess_n just_a as_o those_o who_o will_v rectify_v a_o crooked_a tree_n turn_v it_o too_o much_o on_o the_o other_o side_n from_o that_o straightness_n which_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v and_o be_v he_o ignorant_a of_o what_o s._n athanasius_n say_v concern_v dionysius_n of_o alexandria_n who_o authority_n the_o arian_n object_v alex._n to_o he_o that_o dionysius_n have_v say_v so_o not_o with_o design_n to_o make_v a_o simple_a exposition_n of_o his_o faith_n but_o occasional_o have_v a_o respect_n to_o the_o time_n and_o person_n that_o a_o gardener_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v fault_n with_o if_o he_o cultivate_v his_o tree_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o soil_n sow_v one_o plant_v another_o prune_v this_o and_o pluck_v up_o that_o we_o must_v say_v s._n jerome_n distinguish_v between_o the_o different_a kind_n of_o writing_n and_o especial_o pammach_n of_o polemical_a and_o dogmatical_a for_o in_o the_o polemical_a the_o dispute_n be_v vagous_n and_o when_o they_o answer_v to_o a_o adversary_n they_o propound_v sometime_o one_o thing_n and_o sometime_o another_o they_o argue_v as_o they_o think_v fit_a they_o say_v one_o thing_n and_o do_v another_o or_o as_o the_o proverb_n say_v they_o offer_v bread_n and_o give_v one_o a_o stone_n but_o in_o the_o dogmatical_a on_o the_o contrary_a they_o speak_v open_o and_o ingenuous_o we_o may_v easy_o apprehend_v by_o that_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o hold_v for_o canonical_a all_o that_o the_o father_n may_v have_v write_v in_o the_o heat_n of_o their_o dispute_n or_o to_o take_v what_o they_o have_v say_v according_a to_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o letter_n since_o they_o themselves_o acknowledge_v that_o have_v the_o pen_n in_o their_o hand_n they_o often_o advance_v thing_n that_o on_o other_o occasion_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v press_v so_o that_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v true_a that_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o african_a father_n have_v make_v that_o visible_a extension_n a_o inseparable_a and_o perpetual_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n yet_o we_o shall_v not_o fear_v to_o say_v in_o respect_n of_o they_o what_o s._n augustine_n himself_o have_v say_v concern_v s._n cyprian_n who_o the_o donatist_n object_v to_o he_o i_o do_v not_o 32._o hold_v the_o write_n of_o cyprian_n for_o canonical_a but_o i_o examine_v they_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n that_o which_o i_o find_v in_o they_o conformable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o receive_v with_o praise_v he_o and_o i_o reject_v with_o the_o respect_n that_o i_o owe_v to_o his_o person_n what_o i_o find_v in_o they_o disagree_v thereto_o we_o shall_v make_v no_o scruple_n to_o apply_v to_o they_o what_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n 48._o have_v say_v on_o the_o subject_n of_o s._n hilary_n and_o some_o other_o father_n who_o they_o allege_v to_o he_o we_o must_v thorough_o distinguish_v these_o sort_n of_o write_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n for_o however_o we_o shall_v read_v they_o yet_o we_o can_v draw_v convince_a testimony_n from_o they_o and_o it_o be_v allow_v we_o to_o depart_v from_o they_o when_o we_o see_v that_o they_o themselves_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v therefore_o certain_a that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v but_o weaken_v his_o proof_n when_o instead_o of_o labour_v to_o establish_v it_o on_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o rest_n have_v do_v he_o restrain_v it_o to_o the_o mere_a authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o some_o father_n we_o have_v think_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v free_o represent_v this_o to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la to_o oblige_v he_o a_o little_a to_o moderate_v his_o pretension_n for_o he_o imagine_v that_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o some_o father_n be_v enough_o to_o convince_v we_o i_o will_v say_v he_o convince_v they_o we_o have_v frequent_o tell_v he_o already_o and_o shall_v tell_v he_o here_o again_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o we_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v any_o other_o authority_n able_a to_o decide_v the_o dispute_v point_n in_o religion_n than_o that_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o if_o we_o sometime_o dispute_v by_o the_o father_n it_o be_v but_o by_o way_n of_o condescension_n to_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o act_v upon_o their_o own_o principle_n and_o not_o to_o submit_v our_o conscience_n to_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o because_o that_o he_o may_v also_o imagine_v under_o a_o pretence_n of_o this_o declaration_n that_o we_o have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o answer_v his_o argument_n i_o shall_v undertake_v to_o answer_v here_o and_o show_v he_o if_o i_o can_v that_o he_o have_v abuse_v the_o authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o that_o he_o have_v neither_o comprise_v or_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o comprehend_v either_o the_o true_a sentiment_n of_o that_o father_n or_o we_o this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o design_v to_o show_v he_o in_o this_o chapter_n and_o in_o the_o follow_v but_o before_o we_o enter_v upon_o this_o matter_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o clear_v in_o a_o few_o word_n the_o history_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o to_o represent_v what_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o quarrel_n and_o what_o their_o separation_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o
which_o be_v that_o which_o he_o will_v avoid_v what_o therefore_o be_v this_o church_n it_o be_v say_v he_o the_o catholic_n church_n 177._o wheresoever_o it_o be_v we_o be_v now_o as_o wise_a as_o we_o be_v before_o for_o it_o always_o remain_v to_o be_v inquire_v into_o what_o be_v that_o catholic_n church_n i_o free_o confess_v that_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o he_o will_v point_v it_o out_o to_o we_o by_o a_o certain_a mark_n which_o be_v the_o visible_a extension_n throughout_o all_o nation_n but_o in_o effect_n he_o do_v it_o not_o for_o he_o say_v in_o the_o end_n that_o this_o be_v but_o a_o negative_a mark_n that_o be_v to_o 184._o say_v that_o every_o society_n which_o have_v not_o that_o mark_n be_v not_o the_o church_n so_o that_o according_a to_o he_o this_o be_v a_o mark_n only_o proper_a to_o show_v what_o it_o be_v not_o and_o not_o to_o show_v what_o it_o be_v whence_o therefore_o shall_v we_o know_v what_o this_o church_n be_v moreover_o his_o proposition_n be_v not_o only_o ambiguous_a through_o the_o word_n church_n but_o it_o be_v further_a so_o through_o that_o of_o separation_n for_o there_o be_v more_o than_o one_o sort_n of_o separation_n there_o be_v such_o as_o be_v unjust_a and_o criminal_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o there_o be_v other_o which_o be_v only_o so_o in_o cause_n and_o circumstance_n there_o be_v also_o such_o as_o be_v permit_v and_o those_o that_o deserve_v to_o be_v condemn_v there_o be_v necessary_a one_o and_o such_o as_o be_v rash_a so_o that_o one_o can_v make_v any_o general_a proposition_n upon_o this_o matter_n which_o will_v not_o be_v captious_a and_o proper_a to_o make_v a_o fallacy_n it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o in_o order_n to_o his_o act_n with_o sincerity_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la shall_v open_o explain_v his_o meaning_n which_o he_o labour_v to_o establish_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o other_o father_n and_o after_o have_v so_o clear_v and_o establish_v it_o he_o shall_v propound_v his_o conclusion_n that_o he_o will_v pretend_v to_o draw_v from_o it_o for_o then_o we_o shall_v see_v whether_o we_o ought_v to_o yield_v or_o deny_v it_o but_o to_o begin_v a_o convince_a argument_n by_o a_o principle_n so_o vagous_n and_o so_o confuse_v as_o this_o that_o we_o have_v see_v and_o even_o to_o affect_v that_o confusion_n without_o be_v willing_a to_o explain_v himself_o be_v in_o my_o judgement_n a_o procedure_n very_o fit_a to_o be_v suspect_v and_o which_o may_v just_o make_v we_o doubt_v that_o instead_o of_o a_o convince_a argument_n he_o give_v we_o nothing_o but_o a_o fallacy_n to_o clear_v this_o doubt_n it_o will_v be_v here_o necessary_a to_o give_v a_o clear_a and_o distinct_a idea_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n augustine_n upon_o this_o subject_n about_o which_o we_o be_v dispute_v first_o then_o we_o must_v know_v that_o this_o father_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o true_o faithful_a only_o and_o the_o true_o just_a in_o opposition_n to_o the_o wicked_a the_o worldly_a infidel_n and_o heretic_n be_v the_o true_a church_n proper_o so_o call_v and_o this_o be_v what_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o passage_n it_o must_v not_o be_v imagine_v say_v he_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o petilianus_n that_o the_o 8._o wicked_a belong_v to_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o church_n under_o a_o pretence_n that_o they_o corporal_o partake_v of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o sacrament_n be_v holy_a even_o in_o such_o person_n but_o they_o serve_v only_o to_o increase_v their_o condemnation_n because_o they_o give_v and_o receive_v they_o unworthy_o and_o as_o for_o they_o they_o be_v not_o in_o that_o assembly_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o consist_v in_o his_o member_n increase_v by_o be_v compact_a and_o fit_o join_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n for_o this_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o a_o rock_n according_a to_o what_o our_o saviour_n say_v upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o other_o be_v only_o build_v upon_o the_o sand_n as_o the_o same_o lord_n say_v i_o will_v liken_v he_o who_o hear_v my_o word_n and_o do_v not_o what_o they_o teach_v to_o a_o foolish_a man_n who_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o the_o sand_n and_o elsewhere_o both_o the_o good_a and_o the_o wicked_a may_v baptize_v but_o there_o be_v but_o one_o 2._o only_a god_n always_o good_a who_o can_v wash_v the_o conscience_n the_o wicked_a be_v therefore_o at_o present_a condemn_v by_o jesus_n christ_n because_o they_o have_v a_o wicked_a and_o defile_v conscience_n and_o at_o present_a they_o be_v not_o of_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n although_o the_o church_n herself_o be_v ignorant_a that_o they_o be_v not_o for_o jesus_n christ_n can_v have_v any_o of_o his_o member_n condemn_v so_o that_o they_o baptize_v be_v themselves_o out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o god_n be_v not_o please_v that_o all_o these_o monster_n shall_v be_v reckon_v among_o the_o member_n of_o that_o only_a dove_n nor_o that_o they_o shall_v enter_v into_o his_o enclose_a garden_n the_o keeper_n whereof_o can_v never_o be_v deceive_v and_o elsewhere_o whether_o they_o 17._o seem_v to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n or_o whether_o they_o be_v open_o discover_v to_o be_v out_o of_o it_o that_o which_o be_v flesh_n be_v always_o flesh_n that_o the_o chaff_n as_o it_o be_v unfruitful_a fly_v in_o the_o air_n whether_o it_o be_v blow_v thither_o by_o the_o occasion_n of_o some_o temptation_n as_o by_o the_o wind_n or_o no_o it_o be_v always_o chaff_n those_o who_o be_v harden_v by_o carnality_n be_v mingle_v in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o saint_n cease_v not_o to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n it_o be_v therefore_o certain_a that_o s._n augustine_n acknowledge_v none_o to_o be_v proper_o the_o church_n but_o the_o true_o faithful_a and_o true_o righteous_a but_o because_o that_o these_o faithful_a and_o these_o righteous_a be_v mix_v with_o the_o wicked_a the_o worldly_a and_o heretic_n in_o the_o circle_n of_o the_o same_o external_n call_v as_o the_o chaff_n be_v with_o the_o good_a seed_n in_o the_o same_o floor_n or_o as_o the_o tare_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o good_a wheat_n in_o the_o same_o field_n we_o must_v note_v in_o the_o second_o place_n that_o s._n augustine_n give_v another_o notion_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o call_v the_o mix_a church_n and_o it_o be_v to_o explain_v this_o notion_n that_o he_o set_v before_o passim_fw-la we_o all_o the_o comparison_n that_o the_o scripture_n make_v use_v of_o to_o represent_v the_o mixture_n of_o the_o good_a with_o the_o bad_a in_o the_o same_o call_v that_o of_o the_o field_n where_o the_o son_n of_o man_n cast_v his_o seed_n and_o where_o the_o enemy_n arise_v in_o the_o night_n and_o sow_v his_o tare_n also_o so_o that_o the_o wheat_n and_o the_o tare_n must_v grow_v there_o together_o till_o the_o time_n of_o harvest_n that_o of_o the_o net_n that_o the_o fisherman_n cast_v into_o the_o sea_n and_o which_o enclose_v equal_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a fish_n that_o of_o the_o floor_n where_o the_o good_a grain_n be_v mix_v with_o the_o chaff_n and_o that_o of_o the_o house_n in_o which_o there_o be_v vessel_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o other_o of_o wood_n and_o earth_n it_o be_v for_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o he_o make_v use_v of_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o mix_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n meaning_n by_o true_a the_o true_o faithful_a and_o righteous_a 32._o only_o and_o by_o mix_v the_o faithful_a and_o righteous_a join_v with_o those_o who_o be_v not_o so_o and_o that_o both_o together_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o mixture_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o external_a call_n make_v in_o a_o manner_n but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n he_o make_v use_v for_o the_o same_o purpose_n of_o 51._o the_o distinction_n of_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o he_o will_v that_o none_o but_o the_o true_o faithful_a and_o righteous_a be_v of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o the_o other_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o form_v two_o idea_n of_o the_o church_n the_o one_o distinct_a and_o the_o other_o confuse_a the_o distinct_a restrain_v the_o church_n precise_o to_o those_o in_o who_o she_o proper_o consist_v and_o who_o be_v her_o true_a member_n and_o these_o be_v the_o true_o righteous_a and_o faithful_a but_o the_o confuse_a include_v all_o those_o who_o external_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n the_o good_a wheat_n and_o the_o tare_n the_o chaff_n and_o the_o good_a seed_n the_o good_a and_o
the_o bad_a fish_n the_o vessel_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o those_o of_o wood_n and_o earth_n and_o in_o this_o confuse_a notion_n the_o church_n be_v the_o field_n the_o floor_n the_o net_n and_o the_o house_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v of_o but_o as_o this_o mixture_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o may_v be_v understand_v two_o way_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o manner_n or_o in_o regard_n of_o doctrine_n we_o must_v note_v in_o the_o three_o place_n that_o this_o notion_n of_o the_o mix_a church_n according_a to_o s._n augustine_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o for_o he_o will_v have_v we_o sometime_o conceive_v of_o it_o as_o a_o body_n wherein_o the_o righteous_a be_v only_o mingle_v with_o the_o unrighteous_a that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o wicked_a who_o manner_n be_v vicious_a and_o corrupt_a and_o sometime_o also_o he_o will_v have_v we_o conceive_v it_o as_o a_o body_n where_o the_o heretic_n be_v mix_v with_o the_o true_o faithful_a as_o well_o as_o the_o righteous_a with_o the_o unrighteous_a in_o the_o former_a case_n the_o mix_a church_n be_v a_o pure_a communion_n in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n but_o corrupt_v in_o regard_n of_o manner_n and_o in_o the_o second_o it_o be_v a_o communion_n not_o only_o corrupt_v in_o regard_n of_o manner_n but_o impure_a also_o and_o corrupt_v in_o regard_n of_o its_o tenet_n these_o two_o sort_n of_o mixture_n be_v without_o doubt_n in_o the_o hypothesis_n of_o s._n augustine_n the_o first_o make_v all_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o dispute_n against_o the_o donatist_n and_o as_o for_o the_o second_o he_o often_o explain_v himself_o in_o his_o book_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o psalm_n against_o the_o donatist_n where_o donat._n he_o say_v that_o after_o jesus_n christ_n have_v purge_v his_o floor_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o righteous_a be_v as_o the_o new_a seed_n which_o he_o spread_v abroad_o over_o all_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v make_v another_o harvest_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o this_o harvest_n grow_v up_o amid_o the_o tare_n because_o there_o be_v heresy_n every_o where_o haec_fw-la messis_fw-la crescit_fw-la inter_fw-la zizania_fw-la quia_fw-la sunt_fw-la haereses_fw-la ubique_fw-la in_o that_o same_o psalm_n and_o elsewhere_o in_o divers_a place_n he_o quote_v the_o example_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o the_o saint_n the_o prophet_n and_o the_o righteous_a be_v mix_v not_o only_o with_o the_o wicked_a who_o manner_n be_v debauch_v and_o criminal_a but_o also_o with_o the_o superstitious_a and_o idolater_n that_o which_o leave_v no_o difficulty_n about_o it_o for_o idolatry_n be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o heresy_n we_o must_v note_v in_o the_o four_o place_n that_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v we_o consider_v the_o mix_a church_n in_o two_o different_a state_n for_o as_o for_o that_o which_o respect_n man_n manner_n he_o say_v that_o sometime_o the_o wicked_a do_v not_o prevail_v over_o the_o righteous_a either_o in_o number_n or_o authority_n but_o that_o sometime_o also_o they_o prevail_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o the_o good_a be_v often_o oppress_v under_o their_o multitude_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o he_o treat_v particular_o of_o in_o his_o three_o book_n against_o parmenianus_n and_o so_o in_o regard_n of_o heresy_n he_o mean_v that_o sometime_o they_o grow_v so_o powerful_a as_o to_o infect_v almost_o all_o the_o body_n and_o this_o be_v what_o he_o express_o show_v in_o a_o letter_n to_o vincentius_n 80._o a_o donatist_n bishop_n and_o in_o that_o which_o he_o write_v to_o hesychius_n thus_o it_o be_v that_o s._n augustine_n have_v conceive_v of_o the_o church_n and_o according_a to_o these_o different_a notion_n and_o these_o different_a state_n he_o have_v speak_v different_o of_o separation_n from_o it_o as_o for_o that_o which_o regard_v the_o true_o righteous_a and_o faithful_a there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o that_o he_o think_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v not_o only_o a_o internal_a communion_n of_o charity_n with_o they_o found_v upon_o the_o unity_n that_o be_v between_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v all_o but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n one_o and_o the_o same_o piety_n and_o the_o same_o righteousness_n but_o a_o external_a communion_n also_o which_o consist_v in_o join_v with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o assembly_n in_o partake_v of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n in_o approve_v their_o faith_n piety_n good_a work_n and_o in_o one_o word_n in_o account_v they_o their_o brethren_n as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o know_v they_o but_o this_o be_v not_o that_o which_o make_v the_o difficulty_n all_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o mix_a church_n and_o all_o the_o dispute_n be_v to_o know_v how_o according_a to_o s._n augustine_n the_o corn_n and_o the_o tare_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o true_o faithful_a and_o the_o heretic_n aught_o to_o remain_v together_o in_o the_o same_o communion_n and_o in_o what_o case_n they_o may_v separate_v themselves_o we_o must_v therefore_o note_v in_o the_o five_o place_n that_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o father_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a separation_n that_o a_o man_n can_v never_o make_v under_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o without_o be_v a_o schismatic_a and_o that_o there_o be_v another_o that_o he_o may_v lawful_o make_v and_o which_o it_o be_v sometime_o necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v he_o have_v distinguish_v between_o two_o external_a bond_n that_o shall_v unite_v we_o to_o one_o another_o the_o first_o be_v that_o of_o the_o external_n and_o general_n call_v to_o christianity_n the_o second_o be_v that_o of_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n and_o the_o same_o assembly_n it_o be_v the_o first_o bond_n that_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v to_o be_v inviolable_a not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o faithful_a between_o themselves_o but_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o heretic_n and_o not_o only_o while_o we_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v in_o the_o public_a assembly_n but_o even_o then_o when_o we_o excommunicate_v they_o and_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v that_o he_o understand_v that_o which_o jesus_n christ_n say_v in_o his_o parable_n that_o the_o tare_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v pluck_v up_o which_o the_o enemy_n have_v 30._o sow_v among_o the_o good_a wheat_n in_o the_o same_o field_n but_o that_o he_o will_v leave_v both_o to_o grow_v together_o until_o the_o harvest_n and_o it_o be_v this_o kind_n of_o unity_n whereof_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o just_a necessity_n of_o ever_o break_v praecidendae_fw-la unitatis_fw-la nulla_fw-la est_fw-la justa_fw-la necessitas_fw-la it_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o 11._o same_o net_n that_o enclose_v both_o good_a and_o bad_a fish_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o floor_n that_o contain_v both_o the_o good_a seed_n and_o the_o chaff_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o field_n where_o the_o tare_n grow_v up_o with_o the_o wheat_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o house_n where_o there_o be_v vessel_n of_o wood_n and_o earth_n with_o those_o of_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o in_o a_o word_n this_o unity_n that_o we_o call_v the_o external_a and_o general_a call_n to_o christianity_n it_o be_v therefore_o first_o of_o all_o in_o this_o sense_n that_o he_o mean_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n from_o which_o we_o ought_v never_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o under_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o and_o from_o which_o all_o those_o who_o separate_v themselves_o be_v schismatic_n for_o he_o understand_v it_o of_o that_o mix_a church_n that_o field_n that_o floor_n that_o net_n that_o common_a house_n out_o of_o which_o we_o must_v never_o go_v forth_o nor_o drive_v out_o other_o howsoever_o wicked_a and_o heretical_a they_o may_v be_v there_o be_v none_o but_o god_n who_o can_v make_v this_o separation_n and_o who_o will_v in_o effect_n make_v it_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o it_o be_v thus_o that_o the_o donatist_n have_v separate_v themselves_o so_o it_o be_v chief_o upon_o this_o that_o he_o convince_v they_o of_o schism_n for_o they_o own_a none_o for_o christian_n but_o those_o of_o their_o own_o party_n they_o reject_v the_o baptism_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n they_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o pagan_n who_o have_v no_o more_o any_o shadow_n of_o christianity_n and_o when_o proselyte_n come_v over_o to_o they_o they_o make_v they_o pass_v through_o all_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o catechumeni_fw-la before_o they_o will_v receive_v they_o and_o they_o begin_v to_o make_v they_o christian_n anew_o as_o if_o they_o have_v come_v out_o of_o a_o society_n of_o absolute_a infidel_n as_o i_o have_v note_v in_o my_o four_o
they_o from_o the_o church_n because_o they_o bring_v in_o a_o new_a heresy_n into_o it_o but_o why_o also_o do_v the_o same_o s._n augustine_n with_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n hold_v the_o donatist_n to_o be_v just_o excommunicate_v against_o who_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v and_o why_o do_v not_o they_o receive_v they_o into_o their_o communion_n but_o only_o after_o sign_n of_o repentance_n and_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n jesus_n christ_n who_o propound_v the_o parable_n of_o the_o tare_n do_v not_o he_o clear_o ordain_v excommunication_n elsewhere_o say_v that_o if_o our_o brother_n will_v not_o obey_v the_o church_n correct_v he_o we_o ought_v to_o reckon_v he_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n that_o which_o manifest_o show_v we_o that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o another_o to_o pluck_v up_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n excommunicate_v but_o it_o do_v not_o pluck_v up_o see_v here_o precise_o that_o which_o s._n augustine_n himself_o say_v non_fw-la estis_fw-la ad_fw-la eradicandum_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la corrigendum_fw-la from_o whence_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v appear_v that_o according_a to_o this_o father_n there_o be_v a_o bad_a separation_n and_o that_o be_v schismatical_a in_o its_o own_o nature_n and_o another_o that_o be_v not_o so_o and_o that_o although_o it_o be_v never_o permit_v we_o to_o make_v the_o former_a yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o we_o may_v not_o make_v the_o latter_a provide_v we_o do_v it_o upon_o just_a cause_n and_o observe_v the_o rule_n of_o prudence_n and_o charity_n in_o it_o we_o must_v therefore_o lay_v it_o down_o as_o a_o certain_a truth_n that_o s._n augustine_n think_v that_o we_o may_v sometime_o break_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o assembly_n we_o be_v only_o concern_v to_o know_v in_o what_o case_n he_o think_v that_o that_o separation_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o make_v this_o point_n clear_a i_o shall_v say_v in_o the_o six_o place_n that_o when_o s._n augustine_n consider_v the_o church_n in_o the_o mere_a mixture_n with_o the_o wicked_a that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o mixture_n with_o those_o who_o manner_n be_v vicious_a and_o criminal_a he_o teach_v that_o those_o who_o be_v in_o office_n in_o the_o church_n may_v proceed_v to_o the_o excommunication_n of_o impenitent_a sinner_n when_o those_o sinner_n be_v few_o in_o number_n and_o when_o there_o be_v ground_n to_o believe_v that_o they_o may_v disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o the_o crime_n include_v a_o whole_a multitude_n and_o that_o the_o body_n in_o general_n be_v infect_v than_o he_o will_v that_o the_o good_a shall_v content_v themselves_o to_o preserve_v their_o own_o righteousness_n without_o partake_v of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o wicked_a he_o will_v that_o they_o shall_v groan_v under_o it_o and_o pray_v to_o god_n but_o he_o will_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v separate_v themselves_o when_o the_o evil_a say_v he_o have_v seize_v the_o great_a number_n nothing_o remain_v for_o the_o good_a to_o do_v but_o to_o groan_v and_o lament_v and_o a_o little_a low_o if_o the_o contagion_n of_o sin_n have_v 2._o invade_v the_o multitude_n than_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o discipline_n shall_v be_v use_v with_o mercy_n for_o the_o counsel_n of_o separation_n be_v vain_a pernicious_a and_o sacrilegious_a but_o when_o he_o consider_v the_o church_n not_o only_o as_o a_o mixture_n of_o good_a and_o wicked_a but_o also_o as_o a_o mixture_n of_o the_o true_o faithful_a and_o heretic_n i_o maintain_v that_o he_o have_v formal_o acknowledge_v the_o justice_n and_o necessity_n of_o a_o separation_n not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o some_o particular_a person_n but_o in_o regard_n even_o of_o entire_a society_n provide_v they_o go_v not_o so_o far_o as_o that_o which_o he_o call_v eradication_n we_o have_v already_o note_v that_o he_o will_v that_o we_o shall_v according_a to_o s._n paul_n pronounce_v a_o anathema_n against_o those_o who_o preach_v another_o gospel_n than_o that_o which_o he_o have_v preach_v but_o this_o very_a thing_n give_v the_o faithful_a a_o right_a to_o reject_v the_o communion_n of_o heretical_a society_n and_o to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o their_o assembly_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n he_o aggravate_v it_o as_o a_o very_a strange_a thing_n and_o very_o much_o deserve_v to_o be_v condemn_v that_o the_o heathen_a philosopher_n who_o have_v other_o sentiment_n concern_v divinity_n than_o the_o people_n shall_v partake_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o people_n in_o their_o school_n say_v he_o they_o have_v sentiment_n differ_v from_o 1._o those_o of_o the_o people_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v temple_n common_a with_o the_o people_n the_o people_n and_o their_o priest_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o these_o philosopher_n have_v opinion_n contrary_a to_o they_o touch_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o god_n since_o every_o philosopher_n be_v not_o afraid_a of_o publish_v his_o opinion_n and_o of_o labour_v at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o persuade_v they_o and_o other_o and_o yet_o nevertheless_o with_o that_o diversity_n of_o sentiment_n they_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o assist_v at_o the_o public_a worship_n without_o be_v hinder_v by_o any_o body_n a_o man_n that_o speak_v after_o this_o manner_n will_v not_o think_v it_o ill_o that_o any_o shall_v separate_v themselves_o from_o heretical_a communion_n but_o he_o yet_o further_o explain_v himself_o more_o clear_o afterward_o for_o he_o say_v that_o if_o the_o christian_a religion_n shall_v do_v nothing_o else_o but_o correct_v 5._o that_o vice_n it_o will_v deserve_v infinite_a praise_n and_o he_o add_v immediate_o after_o that_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o so_o many_o heresy_n that_o have_v deviate_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o christianity_n that_o they_o will_v not_o admit_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n those_o who_o teach_v concern_v god_n the_o father_n his_o wisdom_n and_o his_o grace_n otherwise_o than_o the_o truth_n will_v allow_v they_o and_o who_o will_v persuade_v man_n to_o receive_v their_o false_a doctrine_n but_o that_o be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v find_v true_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o manichee_n and_o of_o some_o other_o who_o have_v other_o sacrament_n than_o we_o but_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o who_o have_v the_o same_o sacrament_n have_v sentiment_n differ_v from_o we_o in_o other_o thing_n and_o error_n which_o they_o obstinate_o defend_v for_o they_o be_v shut_v out_o from_o the_o catholic_n communion_n and_o the_o participation_n of_o those_o same_o sacrament_n which_o they_o have_v common_a with_o we_o from_o whence_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v therefore_o you_o will_v say_v that_o s._n augustine_n seem_v sometime_o to_o ascribe_v to_o the_o orthodox_n the_o right_a only_o of_o a_o passive_a separation_n in_o regard_n of_o heretical_a society_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v separate_v from_o they_o even_o then_o when_o they_o separate_v themselves_o for_o he_o say_v in_o some_o place_n that_o though_o the_o traditor_n shall_v have_v open_o maintain_v in_o the_o church_n that_o their_o action_n be_v good_a and_o holy_a that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v deliver_v up_o their_o bibles_n to_o the_o pagan_n for_o they_o to_o burn_v they_o and_o that_o though_o they_o shall_v even_o have_v write_v on_o that_o subject_n provide_v they_o have_v not_o set_v up_o their_o assembly_n 38_o apart_o nor_o separate_v themselves_o yet_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v abandon_v for_o they_o the_o good_a wheat_n which_o signify_v this_o to_o we_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o those_o though_o their_o doctrine_n whereof_o he_o have_v speak_v be_v detestable_a contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n conscience_n and_o good_a manner_n in_o effect_n he_o speak_v almost_o always_o of_o the_o heretical_a society_n of_o his_o time_n as_o of_o those_o who_o be_v themselves_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o who_o the_o church_n have_v not_o reject_v i_o answer_v that_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v we_o suffer_v the_o communion_n of_o heretic_n in_o certain_a case_n but_o that_o he_o will_v have_v we_o also_o in_o other_o case_n to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o they_o while_o we_o be_v in_o no_o danger_n of_o partake_v with_o their_o error_n neither_o in_o effect_n nor_o in_o appearance_n but_o that_o we_o may_v preserve_v the_o profession_n of_o our_o faith_n pure_a without_o consent_v to_o impiety_n or_o seem_v to_o consent_v to_o it_o and_o that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o heretic_n that_o obstinacy_n of_o opinion_n he_o will_v have_v we_o suffer_v their_o communion_n for_o it_o be_v the_o manifest_a doctrine_n of_o this_o father_n that_o in_o the_o society_n of_o the_o
church_n no_o one_o be_v responsible_a but_o for_o his_o own_o crime_n and_o not_o for_o those_o of_o other_o at_o least_o if_o he_o take_v no_o part_n with_o they_o or_o do_v not_o approve_v they_o or_o consent_v to_o they_o so_o that_o while_o there_o be_v no_o obstinateness_n to_o maintain_v error_n while_o there_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o be_v seduce_v and_o while_o one_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o take_v any_o part_n in_o the_o evil_a nor_o to_o hide_v one_o faith_n and_o piety_n under_o the_o vail_n of_o hypocrisy_n this_o father_n yield_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v communion_n with_o heretic_n as_o the_o ancient_a prophet_n have_v communion_n with_o the_o idolater_n of_o their_o time_n and_o as_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o disciple_n have_v communion_n with_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n and_o be_v find_v among_o they_o in_o the_o same_o assembly_n but_o when_o there_o be_v a_o invincible_a opinionativeness_n and_o error_n be_v so_o deep_o root_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o hope_n of_o its_o be_v heal_v s._n augustine_n will_v in_o this_o case_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v separate_v himself_o from_o their_o communion_n this_o be_v that_o which_o he_o teach_v in_o the_o same_o book_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n the_o church_n say_v he_o suffer_v their_o error_n while_o they_o 6._o have_v no_o accuser_n or_o do_v not_o defend_v their_o false_a opinion_n with_o obstinacy_n but_o when_o they_o be_v accuse_v and_o defend_v themselves_o obstinate_o in_o their_o opinion_n she_o separate_v they_o from_o her_o communion_n which_o be_v formal_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o right_n of_o active_a separation_n in_o a_o orthodox_n church_n and_o from_o the_o same_o we_o may_v evident_o conclude_v that_o this_o father_n do_v not_o approve_v that_o we_o shall_v remain_v in_o a_o heretical_a communion_n when_o there_o be_v the_o least_o necessity_n of_o partake_v in_o error_n wickedness_n or_o superstition_n whether_o in_o effect_n or_o appearance_n and_o that_o he_o will_v on_o the_o contrary_n conclude_v that_o in_o this_o case_n the_o good_a shall_v separate_v themselves_o for_o the_o conservation_n of_o their_o own_o righteousness_n but_o to_o give_v a_o yet_o great_a light_n to_o this_o matter_n we_o must_v note_v that_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o father_n every_o society_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v that_o determine_v a_o false_a doctrine_n and_o publish_v book_n of_o it_o to_o teach_v it_o posterity_n and_o who_o will_v have_v none_o receive_v its_o communion_n but_o those_o who_o approve_v that_o doctrine_n in_o give_v the_o orthodox_n a_o just_a occasion_n to_o separate_v themselves_o she_o herself_o first_o of_o all_o break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n and_o it_o be_v she_o that_o make_v the_o active_a separation_n and_o become_v schismatical_a this_o be_v that_o which_o he_o teach_v in_o his_o treatise_n against_o cresconius_n this_o donatist_n have_v say_v to_o he_o that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o approve_v of_o the_o crime_n of_o the_o traditor_n if_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o displease_v he_o he_o ought_v to_o fly_v from_o and_o abandon_v the_o church_n of_o the_o traditor_n to_o answer_v to_o this_o s._n augustine_n say_v first_o of_o all_o that_o though_o there_o shall_v have_v be_v traditor_n in_o his_o church_n yet_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o forsake_v it_o while_o he_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o their_o crime_n and_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o condemn_v it_o and_o labour_v to_o correct_v it_o by_o preach_v and_o discipline_n he_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o example_n of_o s._n cyprian_n who_o declaim_v against_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o church_n but_o who_o do_v not_o separate_v himself_o from_o it_o and_o by_o that_o of_o david_n of_o samuel_n of_o isaiah_n of_o jeremiah_n of_o zachary_n and_o other_o saint_n who_o cry_v out_o against_o the_o transgressor_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o without_o separate_v themselves_o notwithstanding_o since_o immediate_o after_o he_o add_v be_v it_o that_o the_o traditor_n have_v institute_v 38._o some_o new_a sacrament_n or_o some_o new_a baptism_n be_v it_o that_o they_o have_v compose_v book_n to_o teach_v other_o to_o do_v or_o imitate_v the_o action_n of_o the_o traditor_n or_o that_o they_o have_v recommend_v those_o book_n to_o posterity_n or_o that_o we_o hold_v and_o follow_v that_o doctrine_n if_o they_o have_v do_v so_o and_o suffer_v no_o person_n to_o have_v be_v in_o their_o communion_n but_o those_o who_o will_v read_v their_o book_n and_o approve_v that_o doctrine_n i_o say_v that_o they_o will_v have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o you_o see_v i_o in_o their_o schism_n you_o will_v then_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v that_o i_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o traditor_n these_o word_n note_v clear_o what_o i_o have_v say_v that_o when_o a_o church_n teach_v a_o false_a doctrine_n which_o it_o make_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o it_o will_v receive_v into_o its_o communion_n none_o but_o those_o who_o approve_v it_o it_o be_v not_o only_o just_a to_o separate_v from_o she_o but_o it_o be_v she_o herself_o that_o break_v the_o bond_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o cast_v herself_o into_o schism_n but_o this_o be_v precise_o that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v in_o respect_n of_o we_o for_o she_o have_v not_o only_o decide_v as_o of_o faith_n the_o doctrine_n that_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a she_o have_v not_o only_o set_v forth_o book_n to_o teach_v those_o tenet_n to_o posterity_n but_o she_o have_v cut_v off_o all_o those_o from_o her_o communion_n who_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o after_o the_o manner_n that_o she_o teach_v they_o so_o that_o we_o have_v in_o this_o regard_n a_o just_a reason_n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v she_o that_o have_v make_v the_o active_a separation_n and_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o we_o have_v reason_n in_o the_o foundation_n it_o be_v she_o that_o have_v break_v the_o christian_a unity_n and_o to_o which_o the_o schism_n ought_v to_o be_v impute_v and_o not_o to_o we_o who_o be_v in_o a_o mere_a passive_a separation_n from_o whence_o by_o the_o way_n it_o further_o follow_v that_o to_o the_o decide_v the_o question_n of_o the_o schism_n that_o be_v between_o we_o and_o to_o know_v which_o of_o the_o two_o party_n be_v to_o blame_v we_o must_v necessary_o come_v to_o the_o discussion_n of_o the_o controvert_v article_n for_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v decide_v nothing_o that_o be_v not_o conformable_a to_o the_o gospel_n she_o have_v a_o right_a to_o reject_v all_o those_o from_o her_o communion_n who_o refuse_v to_o believe_v her_o doctrine_n we_o will_v grant_v this_o but_o if_o she_o have_v decide_v error_n it_o be_v certain_a also_o that_o the_o necessity_n which_o she_o have_v impose_v on_o other_o to_o believe_v and_o practice_v they_o in_o order_n to_o their_o be_v in_o her_o communion_n render_v her_o guilty_a of_o schism_n all_o depend_v therefore_o on_o the_o discussion_n of_o the_o foundation_n for_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n leave_v of_o doubt_v that_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n augustine_n it_o be_v not_o only_o permit_v but_o even_o necessary_a to_o the_o orthodox_n in_o some_o certain_a case_n to_o be_v no_o long_o join_v in_o the_o assembly_n of_o those_o who_o teach_v those_o error_n and_o to_o live_v separate_v from_o their_o communion_n we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o close_a whether_o that_o multitude_n and_o visible_a extension_n can_v take_v away_o that_o right_n from_o a_o small_a party_n restrain_v to_o a_o few_o person_n and_o place_n for_o there_o remain_v nothing_o but_o this_o doubt_n to_o be_v take_v away_o but_o to_o effect_v this_o we_o must_v go_v on_o to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o second_o proposition_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la the_o infallible_a and_o perpetual_a mark_n say_v he_o to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o according_a to_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o other_o african_a father_n be_v a_o visible_a extension_n throughout_o all_o nation_n because_o that_o visible_a extension_n according_a to_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o negative_a mark_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o every_o society_n which_o have_v not_o that_o extension_n be_v not_o the_o church_n so_o that_o this_o argue_v be_v always_o just_a your_o society_n be_v shut_v up_o in_o a_o small_a part_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n it_o be_v add_v he_o by_o this_o principle_n that_o s._n augustine_n have_v dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n and_o convince_v they_o to_o be_v schismatics_n this_o proposition_n be_v not_o less_o captious_a nor_o less_o ambiguous_a than_o the_o former_a for_o if_o the_o author_n of_o the_o
be_v the_o time_n whereof_o hilary_n speak_v in_o his_o write_n which_o you_o artificial_o make_v use_v of_o to_o elude_v so_o many_o divine_a testimony_n which_o i_o have_v set_v before_o you_o as_o if_o the_o church_n have_v perish_v throughout_o all_o the_o world_n you_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o church_n in_o galatia_n when_o the_o apostle_n say_v o_o foolish_a galatian_n who_o have_v bewitch_v you_o that_o after_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n you_o shall_v end_v in_o the_o flesh_n for_o thus_o it_o be_v well_o nigh_o that_o you_o calumniate_v the_o learned_a hilary_n under_o a_o pretence_n that_o he_o censure_v the_o negligent_a and_o the_o fearful_a for_o who_o he_o have_v as_o it_o be_v so_o many_o birth-pang_n till_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v form_v in_o they_o who_o be_v there_o that_o know_v not_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o arianism_n divers_a simple_a person_n deceive_v by_o obscure_a expression_n imagine_v that_o the_o arian_n believe_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o themselves_o that_o other_o yield_v through_o fear_n and_o dissimulation_n and_o consent_v in_o appearance_n to_o heresy_n not_o walk_v in_o integrity_n in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n you_o will_v see_v you_o donatist_n that_o he_o have_v not_o pardon_v those_o person_n for_o you_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n upon_o this_o subject_n read_v what_o s._n paul_n have_v write_v concern_v s._n peter_n see_v afterward_o what_o s._n cyprian_n have_v think_v be_v to_o be_v do_v on_o these_o occasion_n and_o you_o will_v find_v that_o it_o be_v to_o very_o ill_a purpose_n to_o blame_v the_o mildness_n of_o the_o church_n which_o gather_v together_o the_o member_n of_o jesus_n christ_n when_o they_o be_v disperse_v instead_o of_o disperse_v they_o when_o they_o be_v gather_v together_o howsoever_o it_o be_v there_o have_v be_v yet_o some_o firm_a one_o who_o be_v sufficient_o enlighten_v to_o know_v the_o snare_n of_o the_o heretic_n they_o be_v indeed_o very_a few_o in_o number_n in_o comparison_n of_o other_o but_o yet_o nevertheless_o some_o of_o they_o generous_o suffer_v banishment_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o other_o keep_v themselves_o conceal_v here_o and_o there_o throughout_o the_o earth_n thus_o it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n which_o increase_v in_o all_o nation_n preserve_v within_o herself_o the_o good_a wheat_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v that_o she_o will_v preserve_v herself_o unto_o the_o end_n till_o she_o extend_v herself_o over_o all_o people_n and_o even_o over_o the_o barbarian_n themselves_o the_o church_n therefore_o consist_v in_o the_o good_a seed_n that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v sow_v and_o of_o which_o it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o shall_v grow_v up_o until_o the_o harvest_n amid_o the_o tare_n the_o field_n be_v the_o world_n and_o the_o harvest_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n see_v here_o after_o what_o manner_n s._n augustine_n declare_v his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o its_o subsistence_n under_o the_o arian_n since_o come_v afterward_o to_o speak_v of_o a_o passage_n of_o s._n hilary_n which_o they_o have_v object_v to_o he_o he_o say_v that_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v not_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o good_a wheat_n which_o be_v yet_o mingle_v with_o the_o tare_n but_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o tare_n or_o if_o his_o word_n have_v any_o relation_n to_o the_o good_a wheat_n we_o must_v take_v they_o as_o only_o design_v to_o inflame_v the_o zeal_n of_o the_o fearful_a by_o such_o answer_n and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n itself_o frequent_o make_v use_v of_o this_o way_n of_o express_v itself_o in_o general_a term_n which_o at_o first_o seem_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o whole_a body_n but_o which_o notwithstanding_o regard_v only_o a_o part_n habent_fw-la etiam_fw-la scripturae_fw-la canonicae_fw-la hunc_fw-la arguendi_fw-la morem_fw-la ut_fw-la tanquam_fw-la omnibus_fw-la dicatur_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la quosdam_fw-la verbum_fw-la perveniat_fw-la we_o may_v now_o see_v very_o clear_o that_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v like_a to_o the_o donatist_n as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la lay_v it_o to_o our_o charge_n that_o we_o tread_v on_o the_o contrary_a in_o the_o footstep_n of_o st._n augustine_n for_o first_o of_o all_o our_o hypothesis_n touch_v the_o subsistence_n and_o obscurity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v throughout_o conform_a to_o he_o we_o say_v as_o he_o do_v that_o god_n have_v always_o preserve_v his_o true_o faithful_a in_o the_o very_a communion_n of_o the_o corrupt_a church_n we_o say_v with_o he_o that_o in_o the_o most_o violent_a enter_v in_o of_o error_n and_o superstition_n god_n have_v not_o leave_v himself_o without_o witness_n since_o he_o have_v raise_v up_o not_o only_o person_n but_o whole_a society_n that_o have_v open_o and_o courageous_o maintain_v the_o truth_n and_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o under_o the_o roman_a domination_n and_o as_o to_o the_o passage_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la object_n to_o we_o out_o of_o calvin_n and_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n we_o give_v the_o same_o explication_n of_o it_o that_o s._n augustine_n give_v to_o those_o of_o s._n hilary_n which_o the_o donatist_n object_v to_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o that_o defection_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o that_o ruin_n and_o desolation_n whereinto_o the_o church_n have_v fell_a that_o eclipse_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o treasure_n of_o salvation_n be_v expression_n that_o regard_v proper_o only_o the_o tare_n that_o cover_v the_o field_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o good_a seed_n which_o be_v mingle_v with_o those_o tare_n these_o expression_n only_o regard_v the_o great_a number_n of_o those_o who_o follow_v those_o superstition_n and_o error_n and_o not_o those_o who_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o that_o confusion_n keep_v their_o religion_n pure_a and_o much_o less_o those_o who_o have_v the_o courage_n to_o oppose_v themselves_o open_o to_o error_n and_o to_o resist_v it_o even_o unto_o persecution_n and_o martyrdom_n i_o know_v that_o he_o have_v accustom_v himself_o to_o form_v some_o difficulty_n and_o objection_n against_o our_o hypothesis_n but_o we_o have_v this_o satisfaction_n to_o know_v that_o he_o can_v make_v none_o that_o do_v not_o equal_o regard_v the_o hypothesis_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o we_o and_o to_o which_o by_o consequence_n the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la himself_n will_v not_o be_v oblige_v to_o answer_v if_o he_o will_v not_o act_v the_o donatist_n he_o confess_v himself_o that_o s._n augustine_n have_v acknowledge_v that_o there_o may_v have_v be_v some_o catholic_n hide_v in_o heretical_a communion_n and_o beside_o he_o can_v deny_v that_o the_o passage_n which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o be_v express_v upon_o that_o subject_n 1._o if_o therefore_o he_o demand_v of_o we_o who_o those_o faithful_a be_v who_o before_o the_o reformation_n keep_v their_o faith_n pure_a without_o infect_v themselves_o with_o the_o public_a error_n and_o if_o he_o urge_v we_o to_o mark_v they_o out_o to_o he_o one_o after_o another_o to_o tell_v he_o their_o name_n and_o their_o genealogy_n i_o will_v demand_v of_o he_o likewise_o who_o be_v those_o good_a seed_n of_o s._n augustine_n who_o under_o the_o arian_n ministry_n preserve_v their_o faith_n without_o be_v infect_v with_o heresy_n and_o i_o will_v entreat_v he_o to_o mark_v they_o out_o to_o i_o by_o name_n and_o to_o give_v i_o their_o history_n 2._o if_o he_o demand_v of_o we_o how_o we_o understand_v those_o person_n can_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n live_v under_o a_o ministry_n where_o they_o teach_v transubstantiation_n the_o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o religious_a worship_v of_o image_n which_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v fundamental_a error_n i_o will_v also_o demand_v of_o he_o how_o he_o understand_v that_o the_o good_a seed_n of_o s._n augustine_n can_v live_v under_o a_o arian_n ministry_n where_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o consubstantial_a with_o his_o father_n and_o that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o father_n eternal_o which_o be_v error_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la himself_n judge_n abominable_a 3._o if_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o our_o father_n ought_v not_o therefore_o to_o have_v undertake_v a_o reformation_n but_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v leave_v thing_n in_o the_o estate_n wherein_o they_o be_v since_o howsoever_o corrupt_v the_o latin_a church_n be_v according_a to_o we_o we_o can_v yet_o be_v save_v in_o her_o communion_n i_o shall_v tell_v he_o that_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n the_o orthodox_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v take_v care_n to_o have_v reestablish_v the_o
purity_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n nor_o to_o have_v extirpated_a arianism_n since_o that_o however_o corrupt_v and_o infect_v the_o church_n be_v with_o that_o heresy_n there_o be_v yet_o a_o way_n to_o work_v out_o their_o salvation_n in_o her_o communion_n and_o under_o her_o ministry_n 4._o if_o he_o say_v to_o we_o that_o our_o father_n ought_v not_o at_o least_o in_o reform_v themselves_o to_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o those_o who_o be_v not_o for_o a_o reformation_n nor_o to_o have_v forsake_v their_o communion_n and_o assembly_n i_o will_v also_o say_v to_o he_o that_o after_o this_o reckon_n the_o orthodox_n in_o labour_v to_o purge_v the_o church_n from_o arianism_n ought_v not_o at_o least_o to_o have_v separate_v itself_o from_o those_o who_o will_v retain_v arianism_n but_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v remain_v with_o they_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o communion_n and_o in_o the_o same_o assembly_n which_o nevertheless_o they_o do_v not_o 5._o if_o he_o say_v to_o we_o that_o the_o berengarian_o the_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n be_v schismatic_n since_o they_o have_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o a_o communion_n and_o a_o ministry_n under_o which_o god_n yet_o preserve_v the_o true_o faithful_a i_o will_v likewise_o say_v to_o he_o that_o those_o courageous_a man_n of_o s._n augustine_n be_v in_o this_o reckon_a schismatic_n since_o they_o have_v not_o less_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o that_o communion_n and_o public_a ministry_n when_o that_o ministry_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o arian_n as_o i_o have_v show_v by_o express_a testimony_n 6._o if_o he_o tell_v we_o last_o that_o since_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o can_v have_v work_v out_o their_o salvation_n under_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n before_o the_o reformation_n we_o ought_v to_o confess_v that_o we_o may_v yet_o at_o this_o day_n be_v save_v in_o it_o since_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o same_o estate_n now_o in_o which_o they_o be_v before_o i_o shall_v tell_v he_o that_o the_o arian_n can_v have_v raise_v the_o same_o objection_n against_o the_o orthodox_n after_o their_o separation_n for_o the_o arian_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o have_v change_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o ministry_n under_o which_o s._n augustine_n acknowledge_v that_o god_n have_v preserve_v the_o true_o faithful_a so_o that_o all_o the_o objection_n which_o he_o shall_v make_v against_o our_o hypothesis_n will_v be_v common_a to_o those_o against_o that_o of_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la will_n himself_o be_v as_o much_o concern_v as_o we_o to_o answer_v they_o but_o not_o to_o refer_v ourselves_o whole_o to_o he_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o those_o difficulty_n be_v of_o such_o a_o weight_n as_o that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n leave_v rational_o to_o satisfy_v we_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o therefore_o that_o as_o to_o the_o first_o s._n augustine_n have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v great_a injustice_n to_o demand_v the_o name_n of_o those_o particular_a man_n who_o keep_v themselves_o pure_a under_o a_o impure_a ministry_n since_o we_o do_v not_o keep_v a_o register_n of_o every_o particular_a man_n nor_o of_o the_o state_n of_o their_o conscience_n and_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o know_v in_o the_o general_n that_o the_o promise_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v make_v always_o to_o preserve_v to_o himself_o a_o church_n upon_o earth_n be_v inviolable_a that_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o doubt_v that_o there_o have_v always_o be_v good_a seed_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o arian_n tare_n it_o be_v the_o same_o answer_n that_o we_o make_v there_o need_v nothing_o but_o to_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o second_o he_o have_v answer_v that_o the_o simplicity_n of_o many_o among_o the_o people_n who_o go_v not_o so_o far_o as_o to_o understand_v the_o bad_a sense_n of_o the_o arian_n expression_n shelter_v they_o under_o heresy_n that_o many_o other_o of_o the_o more_o enlighten_v remain_v in_o silence_n through_o the_o fear_n of_o persecution_n content_v themselves_o to_o keep_v their_o own_o faith_n pure_a without_o partake_v in_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o without_o list_v themselves_o up_o against_o it_o in_o effect_n it_o be_v a_o maxim_n of_o phoebadius_n that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o a_o humble_a passim_fw-la conscience_n to_o keep_v its_o own_o faith_n without_o engage_v itself_o to_o refute_v the_o belief_n of_o other_o and_o it_o be_v one_o of_o s._n augustine_n himself_o that_o no_o body_n can_v be_v culpable_a for_o the_o sin_n of_o another_o nor_o by_o consequence_n for_o the_o heresy_n and_o superstition_n that_o infect_v a_o ministry_n provide_v he_o take_v no_o part_n in_o they_o and_o no_o way_n consent_n to_o they_o either_o in_o effect_n or_o appearance_n but_o this_o be_v yet_o the_o same_o answer_n that_o we_o make_v for_o as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v we_o do_v not_o doubt_v that_o there_o be_v among_o the_o people_n a_o very_a great_a number_n of_o person_n who_o light_n go_v no_o further_o than_o the_o mere_a know_v of_o the_o chief_a article_n of_o christianity_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n in_o the_o decalogue_n and_o lord_n prayer_n and_o who_o by_o consequence_n be_v hide_v under_o those_o capital_a error_n with_o which_o the_o public_a ministry_n be_v then_o load_v we_o no_o way_n doubt_v that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o that_o darkness_n there_o be_v not_o a_o great_a many_o enlighten_v person_n who_o through_o the_o fear_n of_o persecution_n remain_v under_o the_o same_o corrupt_a ministry_n with_o the_o other_o separate_v the_o good_a from_o the_o bad_a discern_v the_o error_n and_o superstition_n take_v no_o part_n in_o they_o and_o live_v as_o to_o other_o thing_n in_o that_o hope_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v culpable_a for_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o to_o the_o three_o s._n augustine_n have_v answer_v that_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a objection_n for_o it_o be_v not_o more_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v care_n to_o heal_v a_o disease_n under_o a_o pretence_n that_o as_o great_a as_o the_o disease_n be_v life_n yet_o remain_v than_o to_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v care_n to_o purge_v the_o church_n and_o the_o ministry_n from_o a_o heresy_n that_o infect_v it_o under_o a_o pretence_n that_o there_o be_v yet_o a_o way_n to_o be_v save_v in_o her_o communion_n and_o under_o her_o ministry_n that_o we_o must_v on_o the_o contrary_a labour_v as_o much_o as_o possible_o we_o can_v to_o re-establish_a christianity_n in_o its_o whole_a frame_n lest_o the_o evil_n shall_v increase_v and_o be_v make_v incurable_a through_o a_o too_o great_a negligence_n and_o lest_o that_o good_a which_o remain_v in_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v whole_o corrupt_v by_o the_o contagion_n of_o the_o evil_n but_o this_o be_v also_o the_o very_a same_o answer_n that_o we_o make_v our_o father_n ought_v to_o have_v employ_v all_o their_o endeavour_n to_o reform_v the_o latin_a church_n by_o their_o exhortation_n by_o their_o book_n by_o their_o sermon_n by_o their_o example_n because_o that_o we_o ought_v always_o as_o much_o as_o possible_o we_o can_v and_o as_o the_o time_n and_o our_o knowledge_n call_v we_o to_o it_o to_o labour_v to_o settle_v religion_n in_o a_o state_n of_o purity_n lest_o in_o the_o end_n error_n and_o superstition_n render_v themselves_o universal_a and_o the_o whole_a church_n shall_v perish_v through_o our_o negligence_n for_o although_o jesus_n christ_n have_v promise_v we_o that_o it_o shall_v never_o perish_v yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o will_v be_v to_o tempt_v god_n and_o to_o render_v ourselves_o unworthy_a of_o his_o grace_n to_o neglect_v the_o mean_n that_o he_o give_v we_o for_o its_o preservation_n and_o that_o so_o much_o the_o more_o as_o according_a to_o humane_a judgement_n there_o be_v no_o other_o than_o that_o of_o the_o reformation_n to_o the_o four_o s._n augustine_n have_v answer_v that_o in_o labour_v to_o purge_v the_o church_n from_o arianism_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o who_o obstinate_o persist_v in_o that_o heresy_n and_o the_o fix_a resolution_n that_o they_o testify_v to_o remain_v in_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o make_v they_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o assembly_n but_o we_o answer_v with_o great_a advantage_n that_o our_o father_n in_o labour_v for_o a_o reformation_n aught_o to_o have_v forsake_v the_o assembly_n of_o those_o who_o not_o only_o be_v fix_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o have_v nothing_o reform_v and_o oppose_v themselves_o with_o all_o their_o might_n to_o hinder_v a_o reformation_n but_o who_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o impose_v a_o new_a necessity_n on_o man_n conscience_n to_o believe_v their_o opinion_n and_o even_o to_o
excommunicate_v all_o those_o who_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o as_o to_o the_o five_o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o say_v that_o those_o who_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o arian_n when_o the_o arian_n be_v the_o master_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v schismatic_n since_o he_o himself_o call_v they_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n the_o courageous_a and_o unshaken_a firmissimi_fw-la qui_fw-la fortiter_fw-la pro_fw-la fide_fw-la exulabant_fw-la he_o never_o mean_v to_o condemn_v their_o assembly_n which_o they_o make_v apart_o to_o have_v nothing_o common_a with_o heresy_n since_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o heroical_a courage_n which_o he_o ascribe_v to_o they_o and_o of_o that_o ardent_a zeal_n which_o they_o have_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o effect_n s._n hilary_n praise_v some_o bishop_n of_o france_n germany_n and_o flanders_n of_o who_o he_o write_v that_o they_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o who_o hold_v the_o orthodox_n bishop_n in_o exile_n and_o in_o particular_a he_o extol_v those_o among_o they_o who_o have_v appeal_v to_o a_o synod_n of_o bythinia_n remain_v firm_a and_o constant_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o in_o gather_v themselves_o into_o a_o communion_n among_o themselves_o they_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o other_o s._n augustine_n have_v therefore_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v no_o way_n schismatic_n for_o two_o reason_n the_o first_o be_v because_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o they_o refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o arian_n and_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o ministry_n be_v just_a and_o lawful_a not_o frivolous_a and_o capricious_a as_o those_o of_o the_o donatist_n but_o weighty_a and_o fundamental_a since_o they_o dispute_v about_o the_o eternal_a divinity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o the_o arian_n will_v abolish_v the_o second_o because_o that_o although_o these_o courageous_a man_n of_o s._n augustine_n have_v renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o arian_n and_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o ministry_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v notwithstanding_o that_o there_o be_v absolute_o no_o more_o salvation_n to_o be_v have_v in_o the_o society_n which_o they_o have_v forsake_v for_o beside_o that_o receive_n as_o they_o do_v their_o baptism_n from_o it_o they_o can_v not_o doubt_v that_o the_o child_n who_o die_v before_o they_o be_v infect_v with_o that_o heresy_n be_v save_v they_o do_v not_o also_o condemn_v the_o simple_a and_o the_o weak_a who_o remain_v unfeigned_o in_o that_o communion_n without_o take_v part_n in_o the_o impiety_n which_o be_v teach_v there_o so_o that_o their_o separation_n do_v not_o absolute_o respect_v that_o society_n but_o only_o the_o heretic_n that_o corrupt_v it_o but_o this_o be_v that_o which_o we_o say_v concern_v the_o berengarian_o the_o waldenses_n the_o albigenses_n etc._n etc._n we_o need_v but_o only_o to_o apply_v the_o same_o answer_n to_o they_o last_o as_o to_o that_o which_o regard_v the_o six_o objection_n s._n augustine_n have_v say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o considerable_a difference_n between_o the_o time_n wherein_o the_o arian_n make_v up_o almost_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o that_o wherein_o the_o true_a doctrine_n be_v reestablish_v in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o first_o be_v a_o time_n of_o oppression_n and_o the_o other_o a_o time_n of_o liberty_n that_o in_o the_o former_a time_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o more_o a_o visible_a communion_n on_o the_o earth_n under_o which_o the_o faithful_a may_v place_v themselves_o they_o can_v remain_v under_o a_o corrupt_a ministry_n from_o which_o each_o one_o in_o particular_a have_v a_o right_a to_o separate_v the_o pure_a from_o the_o impure_a in_o wait_v till_o god_n shall_v deliver_v his_o church_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o those_o bad_a pastor_n but_o in_o the_o second_o time_n where_o the_o orthodox_n and_o arian_n communion_n be_v in_o a_o visible_a opposition_n and_o such_o as_o be_v every_o where_o know_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o remain_v under_o the_o arian_n ministry_n without_o have_v a_o arian_n heart_n or_o at_o least_o without_o fall_v into_o a_o detestable_a hypocrisy_n for_o in_o the_o opposition_n of_o these_o two_o communion_n this_o very_a thing_n that_o they_o shall_v remain_v in_o the_o arian_n be_v a_o manifest_a condemnation_n of_o the_o orthodox_n which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v without_o be_v either_o arian_n or_o hypocrite_n moreover_o in_o the_o former_a time_n those_o who_o remain_v out_o of_o necessity_n under_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o arian_n remain_v there_o in_o grief_n and_o ardent_o desire_v that_o god_n will_v procure_v they_o some_o mean_n to_o get_v out_o of_o it_o and_o to_o return_v to_o a_o orthodox_n ministry_n but_o in_o the_o latter_a god_n have_v give_v they_o the_o power_n to_o join_v themselves_o to_o a_o pure_a communion_n they_o can_v not_o remain_v in_o the_o arian_n without_o love_v and_o be_v please_v with_o it_o through_o those_o worldly_a interest_n which_o they_o can_v never_o prefer_v before_o the_o confession_n of_o a_o pure_a faith_n without_o be_v injurious_a to_o god_n without_o wound_v their_o own_o conscience_n without_o have_v a_o debauch_a and_o profane_a spirit_n and_o in_o a_o word_n without_o bind_v over_o themselves_o to_o eternal_a damnation_n behold_v here_o what_o s._n augustine_n have_v answer_v and_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o judge_v that_o we_o must_v answer_v they_o thus_o when_o they_o make_v the_o like_a objection_n to_o we_o we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o two_o time_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o go_v before_o the_o reformation_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v it_o and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v we_o will_v show_v they_o that_o although_o it_o be_v possible_a in_o the_o former_a time_n for_o some_o to_o work_v out_o their_o own_o salvation_n under_o the_o corrupt_a ministry_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o we_o may_v do_v so_o at_o this_o day_n under_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n since_o those_o two_o communion_n be_v now_o find_v to_o be_v set_v in_o opposition_n i_o shall_v not_o urge_v this_o matter_n further_o we_o may_v now_o methinks_v conclude_v from_o all_o that_o which_o i_o have_v handle_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n and_o in_o this_o that_o if_o there_o ever_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o ill-grounded_a objection_n that_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v make_v against_o we_o be_v certain_o one_o of_o that_o nature_n his_o argument_n be_v found_v upon_o nothing_o else_o but_o false_a or_o ill-understood_a proposition_n for_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o s._n augustine_n believe_v that_o there_o be_v any_o particular_a society_n among_o all_o those_o which_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o christianity_n from_o who_o assembly_n one_o may_v not_o in_o certain_a case_n depart_v and_o withdraw_v one_o self_n from_o its_o communion_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o separation_n which_o be_v between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o be_v that_o which_o that_o father_n have_v absolute_o condemn_v and_o for_o which_o he_o accuse_v the_o donatist_n to_o be_v schismatic_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o he_o will_v accuse_v they_o of_o schism_n without_o examine_v the_o foundation_n by_o a_o mere_a passive_a separation_n as_o that_o be_v wherein_o we_o be_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o he_o have_v take_v that_o visible_a extension_n throughout_o all_o nation_n for_o a_o perpetual_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o he_o will_v have_v that_o mark_n to_o decide_v the_o question_n of_o the_o true_a church_n when_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o be_v dispute_v it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o we_o hold_v that_o the_o church_n before_o the_o reformation_n have_v perish_v throughout_o all_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o we_o reduce_v all_o to_o the_o berengarian_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n etc._n etc._n only_o last_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n augustine_n upon_o this_o subject_n be_v any_o way_n contrary_a to_o we_o but_o it_o be_v true_a that_o our_o principle_n have_v all_o the_o conformity_n with_o his_o that_o any_o man_n can_v reasonable_o require_v this_o be_v in_o my_o judgement_n that_o which_o may_v be_v clear_o collect_v from_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v as_o the_o interest_n that_o we_o have_v in_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o matter_n do_v not_o go_v much_o far_o i_o will_v here_o put_v a_o end_n to_o this_o chapter_n and_o this_o three_o part_n concern_v our_o separation_n if_o the_o interest_n of_o truth_n and_o charity_n do_v not_o bind_v i_o to_o make_v a_o reflection_n upon_o a_o proposition_n that_o the_o author_n of_o
the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v set_v before_o we_o which_o be_v that_o schismatic_n be_v out_o of_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n for_o i_o hold_v that_o this_o proposition_n can_v be_v maintain_v after_o the_o manner_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v propound_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v absolute_o and_o without_o any_o distinction_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o to_o establish_v this_o rigorous_a sentiment_n they_o produce_v some_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n who_o have_v in_o effect_n speak_v of_o schism_n in_o extreme_o vehement_a term_n as_o if_o they_o have_v a_o design_n to_o exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o god_n and_o all_o hope_n of_o salvation_n all_o those_o in_o general_n who_o shall_v be_v find_v engage_v in_o it_o but_o that_o very_a thing_n aught_o to_o be_v a_o example_n to_o let_v we_o see_v that_o we_o must_v not_o always_o take_v according_a to_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o letter_n all_o that_o the_o father_n have_v say_v in_o the_o heat_n of_o their_o dispute_n for_o unless_o we_o shall_v be_v altogether_o unreasonable_a we_o must_v place_v a_o difference_n between_o three_o sort_n of_o person_n who_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o a_o schismatical_a communion_n 1._o the_o author_n of_o schism_n who_o usual_o be_v the_o pastor_n and_o guide_n of_o the_o flock_n 2._o understanding_n person_n who_o take_v part_n in_o the_o affair_n and_o who_o very_o well_o know_v what_o they_o do_v give_v their_o consent_n to_o schism_n and_o defend_v the_o author_n of_o it_o 3._o the_o people_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o ignorant_a person_n who_o scarce_o know_v any_o thing_n that_o pass_v or_o who_o know_v but_o very_a confuse_o and_o for_o that_o which_o regard_v the_o author_n and_o other_o intelligent_a person_n as_o it_o be_v most_o frequent_o passion_n interest_n pride_n and_o ambition_n that_o make_v they_o separate_v and_o that_o all_o those_o passion_n turn_v they_o in_o the_o end_n into_o a_o implacable_a hatred_n against_o their_o brethren_n they_o deserve_v our_o condemnation_n for_o those_o crime_n be_v incompatible_a with_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a demonstration_n that_o the_o world_n and_o its_o corruption_n reign_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o we_o must_v therefore_o say_v of_o such_o schismatic_n as_o these_o that_o while_o they_o remain_v in_o this_o condition_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n for_o they_o because_o that_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o covenant_n of_o god_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n can_v subsist_v under_o the_o reign_n of_o those_o brutal_a passion_n but_o to_o imagine_v that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o a_o people_n who_o be_v to_o be_v find_v engage_v in_o a_o schism_n either_o through_o the_o faction_n of_o the_o more_o powerful_a or_o a_o conscience_n prepossess_v by_o a_o zeal_n without_o knowledge_n by_o a_o piety_n too_o scrupulous_a shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o all_o hope_n of_o salvation_n this_o will_v be_v without_o doubt_n to_o fall_v into_o a_o very_a rigid_a opinion_n to_o make_v this_o clear_a by_o example_n i_o have_v already_o mention_v elsewhere_o that_o victor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n excommunicate_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n upon_o the_o difference_n about_o the_o day_n of_o easter_n from_o whence_o there_o follow_v a_o schism_n between_o those_o church_n and_o this_o of_o rome_n i_o do_v not_o now_o inquire_v to_o which_o of_o the_o two_o party_n the_o crime_n of_o the_o separation_n aught_o to_o be_v impute_v either_o to_o the_o asiatic_n who_o adhere_v too_o strict_o to_o the_o custom_n of_o their_o ancestor_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o polycarp_n or_o to_o victor_n who_o without_o prudence_n and_o charity_n separate_v he_o from_o divers_a great_a and_o flourish_a church_n about_o a_o matter_n that_o be_v leave_v self-free_a and_o indifferent_a in_o religion_n i_o only_o say_v that_o this_o will_v be_v a_o horrible_a injustice_n to_o condemn_v those_o people_n to_o eternal_a flame_n who_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o be_v engage_v in_o that_o ridiculous_a quarrel_n only_o through_o the_o capricious_a humour_n of_o their_o bishop_n in_o effect_n we_o have_v see_v that_o notwithstanding_o this_o schism_n they_o do_v not_o fail_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o to_o sit_v together_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a we_o must_v pass_v the_o same_o judgement_n of_o a_o schism_n that_o fall_v 34._o out_o in_o the_o four_o century_n at_o antioch_n between_o the_o meletian_o and_o the_o eustatians_n both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o orthodox_n and_o separate_v from_o the_o arrian_n but_o who_o nevertheless_o will_v not_o communicate_v together_o because_o that_o although_o meletius_n have_v preach_v and_o defend_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o it_o yet_o he_o have_v be_v create_v bishop_n by_o the_o arian_n by_o reason_n of_o which_o the_o other_o orthodox_n will_v no_o more_o communicate_v with_o those_o of_o his_o party_n which_o oblige_v they_o to_o hold_v their_o assembly_n apart_o it_o be_v therefore_o a_o true_a schism_n on_o one_o side_n and_o on_o the_o other_o but_o as_o it_o proceed_v only_o from_o a_o excess_n of_o zeal_n on_o the_o side_n of_o the_o eustatians_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o pass_v a_o sentence_n of_o damnation_n so_o light_o against_o they_o i_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n of_o the_o schism_n that_o fall_v out_o about_o the_o 484._o end_n of_o the_o five_o century_n between_o acatius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o felix_n the_o three_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o mutual_o excommunicate_v one_o another_o for_o the_o interest_n of_o john_n talaia_n and_o peter_n mongus_n competitor_n for_o the_o patriarchate_o of_o alexandria_n acacius_n defend_v the_o side_n of_o peter_n who_o felix_n accuse_v to_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o felix_n on_o the_o contrary_a uphold_v talaia_n who_o acacius_n have_v accuse_v of_o perjury_n and_o to_o be_v unworthy_a of_o a_o bishopric_n and_o this_o schism_n also_o last_v down_o to_o their_o successor_n thirty_o and_o five_o year_n between_o the_o east_n and_o west_n but_o although_o acacius_n draw_v in_o by_o intrigue_n to_o the_o side_n of_o a_o hypocrite_n have_v wrong_v at_o the_o foundation_n yet_o we_o ought_v not_o notwithstanding_o to_o believe_v that_o all_o those_o great_a church_n who_o keep_v communion_n with_o he_o and_o defend_v his_o memory_n after_o his_o death_n be_v absolute_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o hope_n of_o paradise_n in_o the_o six_o century_n there_o be_v another_o schism_n whereof_o i_o have_v already_o speak_v which_o be_v very_o contentious_a and_o embroil_v vigil_n under_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n vigilius_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o mennas_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n the_o ground_n of_o the_o quarrel_n be_v take_v from_o the_o write_n that_o have_v be_v approve_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o which_o afterward_o be_v condemn_v as_o heretical_a by_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n and_o the_o condemnation_n be_v subscribe_v by_o menna_n and_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o their_o bishop_n vigilius_n who_o be_v of_o another_o opinion_n undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o those_o write_n and_o excommunicate_v menna_n and_o the_o rest_n who_o have_v condemn_v they_o but_o some_o month_n after_o he_o take_v off_o his_o excommunication_n at_o the_o solicitation_n of_o the_o empress_n theodora_n to_o who_o he_o owe_v his_o bishopric_n and_o which_o be_v more_o in_o the_o follow_a year_n he_o himself_o pronounce_v a_o anathema_n against_o those_o three_o write_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n illyria_n and_o dalmatia_n persist_v to_o defend_v they_o and_o those_o in_o africa_n assemble_v in_o council_n excommunicate_v vigilius_n as_o a_o dissembler_n some_o time_n after_o vigilius_n chron._n repent_v himself_o of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v do_v undertake_v a_o second_o time_n the_o defence_n of_o those_o write_n justinian_n on_o the_o contrary_a make_v a_o edict_n by_o which_o he_o renew_v their_o condemnation_n and_o vigilius_n on_o his_o side_n excommunicate_v all_o those_o who_o shall_v consent_v to_o this_o edict_n in_o fine_a the_o five_o general_n council_n assemble_v at_o constantinople_n where_o in_o spite_n of_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o three_o write_n be_v condemn_v and_o all_o those_o who_o shall_v approve_v they_o be_v excommunicate_v vigilius_n persist_v in_o his_o opinion_n be_v banish_v and_o die_v some_o year_n after_o but_o his_o successor_n pelagius_n and_o gregory_n approve_v the_o council_n and_o subscribe_v to_o what_o have_v be_v do_v there_o and_o it_o be_v in_o fine_a general_o receive_v by_o all_o and_o reckon_v for_o a_o five_o general_n council_n we_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o if_o the_o people_n be_v to_o be_v save_v or_o damn_v according_a to_o the_o good_a or_o
not_o god_n his_o prophet_n and_o his_o altar_n yet_o among_o they_o lord_n say_v elias_n they_o have_v kill_v thy_o prophet_n and_o throw_v down_o thy_o altar_n and_o the_o hundred_o prophet_n of_o god_n that_o obadiah_n hide_v in_o two_o cave_n to_o withdraw_v they_o from_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o idolatress_n jezabel_n the_o altar_n of_o god_n that_o elias_n repair_v in_o carmel_n to_o sacrifice_v there_o by_o the_o miraculous_a fire_n that_o fall_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o consume_v the_o victim_n the_o call_n of_o elisha_n and_o micaiah_n and_o in_o a_o word_n the_o whole_a history_n of_o those_o schismatical_a ten_o tribe_n do_v it_o not_o evident_o note_v that_o god_n look_v on_o they_o as_o his_o true_a church_n in_o which_o there_o be_v yet_o a_o mean_n to_o be_v save_v we_o must_v not_o therefore_o abuse_v that_o which_o the_o father_n have_v write_v against_o schismatic_n in_o intend_v to_o aggravate_v their_o crime_n and_o to_o draw_v they_o from_o it_o nor_o must_v we_o take_v their_o expression_n in_o the_o whole_a rigour_n of_o the_o letter_n their_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o all_o those_o general_o who_o be_v find_v engage_v in_o a_o schismatical_a communion_n even_o down_o to_o tradesman_n and_o labourer_n who_o remain_v there_o with_o a_o upright_a heart_n and_o through_o the_o prejudice_n of_o their_o conscience_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o eternal_o damn_v but_o that_o the_o author_n and_o defender_n of_o schism_n who_o run_v into_o it_o through_o their_o personal_a interest_n or_o out_o of_o a_o spirit_n of_o fierceness_n pride_n and_o a_o hatred_n incompatible_a with_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n commit_v a_o horrible_a crime_n and_o that_o while_o they_o be_v in_o that_o state_n they_o remain_v deprive_v of_o all_o hope_n of_o salvation_n that_o if_o the_o father_n have_v say_v any_o thing_n more_o general_o and_o which_o can_v be_v thus_o restrain_v it_o be_v just_a to_o understand_v it_o in_o a_o comparative_a sense_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o set_v that_o schismatical_a party_n of_o the_o church_n in_o opposition_n to_o that_o which_o be_v not_o so_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n appear_v evident_o in_o this_o which_o it_o do_v not_o in_o the_o other_o where_o it_o be_v obscure_v by_o that_o schism_n the_o end_n of_o the_o three_o part._n a_o historical_a defence_n of_o the_o reformation_n against_o a_o book_n entitle_v just_o prejudices_fw-la against_o the_o calvinist_n the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o right_n that_o our_o father_n have_v to_o hold_v a_o christian_a society_n among_o themselves_o by_o public_a assembly_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o ministry_n chap._n i._n that_o our_o father_n have_v a_o right_a to_o have_v their_o church-assembly_n separate_v from_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n on_o the_o supposition_n that_o they_o be_v right_a in_o the_o foundation_n the_o order_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o this_o treatise_n require_v that_o we_o now_o go_v on_o to_o that_o separation_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la call_v positive_a and_o that_o after_o have_v confirm_v the_o right_n that_o our_o father_n have_v to_o examine_v the_o state_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n after_o our_o have_v show_v the_o indispensable_a necessity_n that_o lie_v upon_o they_o to_o forsake_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o live_v apart_o from_o her_o communion_n that_o we_o also_o establish_v the_o right_n that_o they_o have_v to_o set_v up_o a_o christian_a society_n among_o themselves_o notwithstanding_o their_o go_v off_o from_o the_o other_o party_n who_o be_v not_o for_o a_o reformation_n and_o to_o make_v up_o alone_o and_o apart_o a_o body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o a_o external_n and_o visible_a communion_n this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o pretend_v to_o establish_v in_o this_o four_o and_o last_o part_n and_o to_o that_o end_n i_o shall_v here_o treat_v of_o two_o thing_n the_o first_o shall_v respect_v the_o right_n of_o those_o public_a assembly_n and_o the_o second_o shall_v be_v concern_v that_o of_o the_o gospel_n ministry_n wherein_o our_o function_n lie_v howsoever_o these_o two_o thing_n have_v a_o dependence_n one_o upon_o another_o it_o will_v yet_o be_v well_o to_o treat_v of_o they_o with_o some_o distinction_n to_o make_v the_o first_o clear_a i_o shall_v first_o lay_v it_o down_o as_o a_o indisputable_a truth_n that_o the_o right_n of_o religious_a assembly_n natural_o follow_v that_o of_o society_n i_o mean_v that_o as_o far_o as_o a_o religious_a society_n be_v just_a and_o lawful_a so_o far_o the_o assembly_n that_o be_v therein_o make_v be_v just_a and_o lawful_a and_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a as_o far_o as_o a_o society_n be_v unjust_a and_o wicked_a so_o far_o its_o assembly_n be_v so_o too_o this_o principle_n be_v evident_a to_o common_a sense_n and_o it_o be_v for_o that_o reason_n that_o we_o condemn_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o heathen_n jew_n and_o mahometan_n as_o unlawful_a and_o criminal_a because_o their_o society_n be_v impious_a and_o wicked_a and_o that_o have_v no_o right_a to_o be_v unite_v to_o believe_v and_o practise_v those_o error_n which_o they_o believe_v and_o practice_n they_o have_v also_o no_o right_a to_o assemble_v themselves_o together_o in_o order_n to_o make_v a_o public_a profession_n it_o be_v for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o we_o hold_v on_o the_o contrary_a the_o christian_a assembly_n to_o be_v not_o only_o just_a and_o allowable_a but_o to_o be_v necessary_a and_o command_v by_o divine_a right_n because_o the_o christian_a society_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n be_v itself_o also_o of_o divine_a right_n it_o be_v then_o true_a that_o the_o right_n of_o assembly_n follow_v that_o of_o society_n but_o we_o must_v further_o suppose_v as_o another_o evident_a and_o certain_a truth_n that_o our_o father_n before_o the_o reformation_n be_v latin_a christian_n live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o which_o they_o make_v as_o considerable_a a_o party_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o that_o from_o father_n to_o son_n throughout_o a_o long_a succession_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n they_o enjoy_v with_o the_o other_o the_o right_n of_o that_o society_n that_o they_o be_v equal_o in_o possession_n of_o it_o with_o the_o other_o common_a assembly_n of_o that_o religion_n have_v a_o part_n in_o the_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o public_a prayer_n in_o the_o read_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n and_o that_o as_o far_o as_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v lawful_a so_o far_o the_o part_n that_o our_o father_n have_v in_o it_o be_v lawful_a also_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o company_n of_o stranger_n or_o unknown_a person_n come_v from_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o america_n or_o the_o southern_a land_n nor_o a_o sort_n of_o people_n drop_v down_o from_o the_o cloud_n who_o be_v new_o join_v together_o with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o society_n but_o person_n and_o whole_a family_n settle_v a_o long_a time_n ago_o who_o be_v join_v together_o with_o they_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n many_o age_n before_o and_o who_o by_o consequence_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o right_n of_o that_o society_n although_o have_v they_o be_v stranger_n american_n and_o barbarian_n on_o who_o god_n shall_v have_v sudden_o bestow_v the_o favour_n of_o call_v they_o to_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o the_o true_a holiness_n of_o christanity_n yet_o we_o can_v believe_v that_o by_o that_o thing_n alone_o they_o will_v have_v be_v invest_v in_o all_o the_o right_n of_o that_o society_n as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o have_v have_v it_o by_o a_o long_a possession_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v they_o be_v christian_n from_o father_n to_o son_n and_o neither_o their_o blood_n nor_o their_o birth_n do_v distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o other_o we_o be_v now_o concern_v only_o to_o search_v out_o whether_o that_o which_o happen_v to_o our_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v their_o reformation_n their_o condemnation_n by_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o their_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v able_a to_o spoil_v they_o of_o all_o their_o right_n for_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o they_o be_v fall_v off_o either_o by_o their_o own_o ill_a carriage_n or_o by_o the_o mere_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o must_v yield_v that_o our_o assembly_n be_v unlawful_a and_o criminal_a but_o if_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o be_v not_o so_o fall_v off_o if_o that_o which_o happen_v to_o they_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o confirm_v their_o right_n and_o render_v it_o more_o pure_a more_o just_a and_o more_o indisputable_a they_o ought_v also_o
be_v note_v in_o the_o three_o part._n but_o sometime_o the_o ground_n of_o those_o division_n be_v take_v from_o doctrine_n or_o worship_n or_o the_o general_a rule_n of_o manner_n and_o consist_v in_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o both_o side_n to_o be_v weighty_a and_o essential_a and_o in_o this_o rank_n we_o may_v place_v those_o division_n which_o arise_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o samosatenian_o the_o arrian_n the_o macedonian_n nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o when_o the_o question_n be_v only_o about_o division_n of_o the_o former_a sort_n we_o can_v rational_o hinder_v ourselves_o from_o acknowledge_v that_o party_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v the_o advantage_n before_o speak_v of_o and_o look_v by_o consequence_n on_o the_o other_o party_n as_o a_o sect_n cut_v from_o it_o the_o one_o be_v the_o tree_n and_o the_o other_o the_o cutoff_a branch_n the_o one_o be_v the_o sun_n and_o the_o other_o a_o separate_a ray._n and_o the_o reason_n that_o make_v that_o prejudice_n just_o be_v not_o that_o the_o great_a party_n can_v have_v do_v wrong_a at_o the_o bottom_n or_o that_o it_o can_v err_v for_o it_o frequent_o happen_v that_o prejudice_n passion_n interest_n cabals_n prevail_v among_o those_o who_o have_v the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n in_o their_o hand_n which_o make_v they_o give_v unjust_a judgement_n and_o it_o may_v be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la will_v not_o maintain_v all_o the_o decision_n and_o excommunication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v just_o but_o the_o reason_n of_o that_o prejudice_n be_v that_o though_o even_o the_o great_a part_n shall_v have_v do_v wrong_a in_o the_o foundation_n yet_o the_o matter_n treat_v on_o be_v not_o of_o such_o importance_n as_o that_o it_o can_v take_v away_o from_o a_o society_n the_o quality_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n while_o sound_a doctrine_n entire_o subsist_v there_o and_o worship_n remain_v pure_a from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v there_o no_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o separation_n the_o lesser_a party_n can_v be_v look_v upon_o otherwise_o then_o as_o schismatical_a because_o it_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o great_a without_o necessity_n and_o suppose_v at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o it_o shall_v have_v reason_n in_o the_o foundation_n yet_o its_o separation_n will_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v criminal_a it_o be_v in_o this_o case_n that_o saint_n augustin_n will_v have_v those_o who_o violence_n or_o as_o he_o say_v carnal_a sedition_n have_v drive_v from_o the_o christian_a assembly_n to_o suffer_v patient_o the_o injury_n do_v to_o they_o without_o throw_v themselves_o either_o into_o heresy_n or_o schism_n and_o without_o set_v up_o of_o assembly_n apart_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v maintain_v and_o defend_v even_o to_o the_o death_n the_o faith_n which_o they_o know_v preach_v in_o the_o church_n sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la say_v he_o conventiculorum_fw-la segregatione_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la mortem_fw-la defendentes_fw-la &_o testimonio_fw-la juvantes_fw-la eam_fw-la 6._o fidem_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la praedicari_fw-la sciunt_fw-la but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o when_o the_o division_n be_v about_o matter_n of_o the_o second_o sort_n those_o i_o mean_v that_o be_v found_v upon_o the_o weighty_a point_n of_o doctrine_n or_o worship_n for_o then_o the_o true_a church_n ought_v alone_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o where_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v where_o it_o be_v go_v neither_o by_o extent_n of_o place_n nor_o by_o number_n nor_o by_o the_o body_n of_o pastor_n or_o prelate_n nor_o by_o the_o wall_n of_o temple_n nor_o by_o council_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o judge_n of_o it_o but_o by_o the_o true_a doctrine_n and_o where_o that_o be_v to_o be_v find_v there_o without_o doubt_n be_v a_o right_a to_o be_v in_o a_o society_n and_o to_o gather_v assembly_n the_o reason_n be_v evident_a because_o we_o can_v say_v in_o that_o case_n that_o although_o the_o more_o numerous_a party_n more_o extend_v and_o which_o have_v the_o body_n of_o pastor_n of_o its_o side_n shall_v be_v wrong_a in_o the_o foundation_n yet_o that_o it_o will_v not_o always_o keep_v the_o quality_n of_o a_o true_a church_n as_o it_o may_v be_v say_v in_o the_o former_a case_n for_o a_o society_n that_o teach_v error_n and_o practice_n a_o false_a worship_n and_o that_o will_v receive_v none_o into_o its_o communion_n but_o those_o who_o believe_v all_o that_o it_o believe_v and_o practice_v all_o that_o it_o practice_n can_v be_v a_o true_a church_n whatsoever_o advantage_n it_o have_v otherwise_o so_o that_o find_v it_o opposite_a to_o another_o pure_a society_n there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o hesitate_n in_o one_o choice_n in_o the_o first_o case_n the_o lesser_a party_n can_v be_v other_o then_o schismatical_a because_o whatsoever_o reason_n it_o may_v have_v at_o the_o bottom_n it_o will_v be_v better_a to_o yield_v then_o to_o separate_a one_o self_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o the_o second_o for_o it_o will_v be_v better_a to_o separate_v one_o self_n then_o to_o yield_v since_o in_o yield_v one_o shall_v fall_v into_o fundamental_a error_n and_o superstition_n contrary_a to_o true_a piety_n in_o a_o word_n in_o the_o former_a case_n the_o number_n dignity_n extent_n of_o place_n the_o body_n of_o the_o pastor_n multitude_n aught_o to_o prevail_v over_o reason_n in_o a_o particular_a injustice_n because_o a_o church_n may_v be_v in_o some_o respect_n unjust_a without_o hazard_v the_o salvation_n of_o its_o child_n but_o in_o the_o second_o reason_v draw_v from_o injustice_n error_n false_a doctrine_n false_a worship_n be_v a_o thousand_o time_n more_o considerable_a than_o all_o those_o advantage_n which_o i_o have_v note_v because_o we_o can_v renounce_v the_o true_a doctrine_n and_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o thing_n of_o great_a moment_n in_o which_o our_o salvation_n will_v not_o be_v absolute_o concern_v it_o be_v this_o difference_n that_o cause_v we_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o two_o different_a way_n in_o the_o father_n which_o appear_v so_o opposite_a and_o contrary_a one_o to_o another_o that_o at_o first_o sight_n trouble_v our_o mind_n for_o when_o they_o write_v against_o the_o novatian_o or_o against_o the_o donatist_n or_o against_o the_o luciferian_o who_o separate_v themselves_o out_o of_o frivolous_a reason_n that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o point_n of_o discipline_n and_o personal_a accusation_n but_o who_o otherwise_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n they_o have_v quit_v to_o be_v orthodox_n they_o set_v before_o the_o people_n that_o multitude_n extension_n the_o body_n of_o the_o pastor_n succession_n and_o other_o advantage_n of_o that_o nature_n as_o thing_n that_o show_v of_o what_o side_n the_o church_n be_v and_o then_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o lesser_a party_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o great_a be_v as_o a_o member_n divide_v from_o the_o body_n a_o branch_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o tree_n or_o as_o a_o ray_n separate_v from_o the_o sun_n but_o when_o they_o be_v engage_v against_o the_o arrian_n who_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n they_o do_v not_o care_n to_o make_v use_n of_o those_o sort_n of_o argument_n on_o the_o contrary_n they_o restrain_v themselves_o to_o look_v for_o the_o church_n where_o the_o true_a doctrine_n and_o faith_n be_v and_o they_o have_v no_o consideration_n either_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o pastor_n or_o of_o the_o multitude_n or_o pulpit_n or_o council_n when_o the_o arrian_n make_v use_v of_o they_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o true_a doctrine_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o three_o part._n but_o that_o very_a thing_n evident_o discover_v the_o ordinary_a cheat_n that_o their_o missionary_n be_v guilty_a of_o and_o the_o other_o petty_a writer_n of_o controversy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o into_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la himself_z falls_z which_o be_v that_o in_o stead_n of_o follow_v with_o respect_n to_o we_o the_o way_n of_o write_v that_o the_o father_n take_v when_o they_o write_v against_o the_o arrian_n from_o who_o they_o differ_v in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n since_o the_o cause_n be_v like_a they_o follow_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o that_o the_o same_o father_n take_v against_o the_o novation_n the_o donatist_n and_o luciferian_o with_o who_o they_o do_v not_o quarrel_n about_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v a_o mere_a sophism_n where_o they_o confound_v two_o altogether_o different_a question_n in_o refer_v to_o one_o case_n that_o which_o can_v have_v any_o place_n but_o in_o the_o other_o but_o they_o will_v say_v be_v not_o you_o yourself_o guilty_a of_o fallacy_n in_o perpetual_o suppose_v as_o you_o do_v in_o this_o dispute_n that_o you_o have_v right_o at_o the_o bottom_n for_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v most_o
pastor_n as_o i_o have_v show_v but_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o well_o be_v of_o a_o church_n but_o it_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o pastor_n alone_o that_o dispense_v the_o sacrament_n to_o we_o and_o their_o preach_v be_v a_o public_a instruction_n that_o more_o strong_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o lively_o apply_v its_o precept_n its_o promise_n its_o threaten_n and_o its_o exhortation_n to_o we_o and_o frequent_o force_v we_o to_o make_v those_o reflection_n on_o ourselves_o which_o we_o shall_v not_o do_v without_o their_o aid_n their_o authority_n restrain_v we_o their_o light_n enlighten_v we_o their_o direction_n guide_v we_o their_o example_n excite_v we_o and_o their_o labour_n case_n we_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o a_o flock_n without_o a_o pastor_n can_v but_o be_v in_o a_o very_a bad_a condition_n for_o howsoever_o each_o of_o the_o mystical_a sheep_n who_o compose_v it_o may_v defend_v themselves_o against_o the_o assault_n of_o the_o wolf_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o ordinary_o do_v either_o with_o such_o force_n or_o such_o success_n as_o when_o the_o defend_n of_o they_o lie_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o faithful_a pastor_n to_o who_o god_n communicate_v a_o great_a measure_n of_o his_o light_n and_o grace_n and_o although_o the_o external_n society_n among_o the_o simple_a faithful_a may_v not_o cease_v to_o subsist_v though_o they_o have_v not_o actual_o any_o pastor_n since_o they_o may_v be_v join_v together_o in_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o profession_n of_o one_o same_o faith_n and_o the_o same_o piety_n which_o assemble_v they_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o first_o convocation_n that_o the_o apostle_n make_v yet_o that_o society_n as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v external_n will_v be_v far_o better_a maintain_v by_o the_o action_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o pastor_n than_o it_o will_v be_v otherwise_o 3._o i_o shall_v not_o fear_v to_o say_v that_o even_o the_o action_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o perpetual_a subsistence_n of_o that_o external_n society_n for_o however_o the_o mere_a read_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n public_a prayer_n in_o common_a the_o mutual_a exhortation_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o write_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v without_o doubt_n sufficient_a to_o preserve_v the_o faith_n and_o piety_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n not_o only_o during_o some_o time_n but_o even_o always_o if_o they_o do_v not_o neglect_v their_o duty_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o according_a to_o the_o way_n that_o we_o be_v make_v and_o to_o speak_v as_o they_o say_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n a_o flock_n can_v abide_v a_o long_a time_n without_o a_o shepherd_n so_o as_o not_o to_o fall_v into_o negligence_n and_o by_o that_o negligence_n into_o a_o oblivion_n of_o its_o duty_n and_o in_o fine_a so_o as_o the_o sheep_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o a_o great_a danger_n of_o dispersion_n see_v here_o after_o what_o manner_n pastor_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o church_n but_o to_o imagine_v that_o it_o can_v absolute_o have_v any_o more_o a_o christian_a society_n or_o lawful_a assembly_n among_o the_o faithful_a when_o their_o ordinary_a pastor_n forsake_v they_o be_v that_o which_o they_o can_v never_o maintain_v with_o any_o reason_n for_o the_o faithful_a be_v the_o sheep_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o when_o their_o pastor_n scatter_v they_o the_o grace_n and_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n call_v they_o together_o they_o be_v in_o a_o society_n by_o the_o right_n of_o the_o first_o convocation_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v a_o perpetual_a right_n which_o subsist_v every_o where_o where_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o true_a christian_a piety_n be_v find_v common_a among_o many_o person_n and_o it_o be_v from_o that_o perpetual_a and_o immovable_a right_o that_o that_o of_o the_o actual_a assembly_n flow_v but_o what_o order_n can_v they_o hold_v in_o their_o assembly_n since_o they_o have_v none_o to_o direct_v they_o external_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o grace_n which_o inspire_v they_o with_o piety_n and_o charity_n will_v itself_o suggest_v a_o order_n and_o subject_v they_o one_o to_o another_o by_o a_o mutual_a consent_n for_o god_n do_v not_o forsake_v his_o own_o child_n though_o man_n and_o the_o church_n may_v always_o say_v in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o prophet_n when_o my_o father_n and_o mother_n forsake_v 27._o i_o the_o lord_n shall_v take_v i_o up_o if_o there_o be_v any_o magistrate_n to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o faithful_a it_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o settle_v a_o order_n among_o they_o for_o the_o civil_a society_n come_v in_o natural_o to_o the_o succour_n of_o the_o religious_a when_o the_o religious_a be_v cast_v into_o any_o extremity_n if_o there_o be_v no_o magistrate_n they_o ought_v to_o agree_v about_o a_o order_n in_o private_a conference_n before_o they_o come_v to_o assemble_v together_o in_o a_o body_n to_o avoid_v confusion_n and_o every_o one_o have_v a_o right_a to_o make_v those_o private_a conference_n but_o what_o can_v they_o do_v in_o those_o assembly_n they_o may_v pray_v to_o god_n there_o they_o may_v implore_v the_o succour_n of_o his_o providence_n and_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o his_o promise_n they_o must_v begin_v by_o that_o afterward_o they_o will_v search_v out_o all_o possible_a mean_n to_o have_v pastor_n call_v to_o that_o office_n by_o the_o ordinary_a way_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n from_o they_o but_o if_o that_o be_v impossible_a or_o if_o they_o see_v that_o that_o will_v be_v evident_o to_o tempt_v god_n and_o put_v the_o flock_n in_o danger_n of_o dissipation_n it_o be_v necessary_a in_o that_o case_n that_o the_o flock_n shall_v choose_v a_o pastor_n for_o itself_o and_o consecrate_v he_o to_o god_n by_o ardent_a prayer_n in_o commit_v to_o his_o trust_n the_o right_n of_o the_o ministry_n that_o reside_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o who_o jesus_n christ_n according_a to_o saint_n augustine_n have_v give_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n for_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o imagine_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v strip_v of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o ministry_n as_o often_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v actual_o without_o pastor_n that_o right_o be_v inviolable_a it_o can_v be_v either_o lose_v or_o separate_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a we_o will_v in_o the_o close_o examine_v whether_o a_o election_n make_v after_o that_o manner_n give_v a_o sufficient_a call_n it_o be_v sufficient_a at_o present_a to_o know_v that_o neither_o the_o right_n of_o a_o christian_a society_n nor_o that_o of_o christian_a assembly_n be_v so_o necessary_o tie_v to_o the_o pastor_n that_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v none_o of_o they_o the_o faithful_a can_v not_o remain_v unite_v together_o external_o in_o a_o body_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n or_o make_v those_o assembly_n lawful_a the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la treat_v about_o this_o matter_n distinguish_v between_o two_o sort_n of_o separation_n the_o one_o negative_a the_o other_o positive_a there_o be_v say_v he_o a_o mere_a negative_a separation_n which_o consist_v more_o in_o the_o denial_n of_o certain_a act_n of_o communion_n then_o in_o positive_a action_n against_o that_o society_n from_o which_o one_o separate_v 147._o and_o there_o be_v another_o positive_a separation_n which_o include_v the_o erect_n of_o a_o separate_a society_n the_o establishment_n of_o a_o new_a ministry_n and_o the_o positive_a condemnation_n of_o the_o former_a society_n to_o which_o he_o be_v unite_v he_o say_v afterward_o that_o we_o do_v not_o content_v ourselves_o with_o the_o first_o kind_n of_o separation_n that_o we_o have_v go_v further_o that_o we_o have_v form_v a_o new_a society_n a_o new_a church_n that_o we_o have_v set_v up_o new_a pastor_n that_o it_o be_v that_o kind_n of_o separation_n whereof_o he_o accuse_v we_o and_o that_o it_o be_v this_o also_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o justify_v ourselves_o about_o he_o repeat_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o end_n and_o conclude_v that_o when_o the_o faithful_a shall_v believe_v themselves_o oblige_v out_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n to_o separate_v themselves_o negative_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o form_v a_o society_n nor_o have_v any_o pastor_n but_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o remain_v in_o that_o state_n without_o any_o pastor_n and_o without_o any_o external_n worship_n in_o wait_v until_o god_n extraordinary_o raise_v up_o some_o with_o visible_a character_n of_o their_o mission_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o that_o distinction_n of_o two_o kind_n of_o separation_n be_v of_o some_o use_n and_o i_o have_v myself_o make_v use_v of_o it_o for_o the_o put_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o this_o treatise_n into_o a_o more_o natural_a order_n
they_o do_v all_o that_o they_o please_v we_o be_v firm_a and_o fix_v upon_o two_o principle_n against_o which_o we_o be_v sure_o they_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o if_o our_o communion_n teach_v the_o true_a doctrine_n if_o it_o have_v the_o true_a worship_n and_o the_o true_a rule_n of_o christian_a sanctity_n to_o a_o degree_n sufficient_a for_o salvation_n and_o if_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o we_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v just_o god_n nourish_v and_o preserve_v his_o true_a faithful_a one_o in_o our_o communion_n whatsoever_o mixture_n there_o may_v be_v of_o worldly_a wicked_a and_o hypocrite_n in_o it_o the_o other_o that_o if_o god_n nourish_v and_o preserve_v his_o true_o faithful_a in_o our_o communion_n we_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n that_o which_o have_v a_o right_a to_o be_v in_o a_o society_n and_o to_o which_o all_o the_o other_o right_n that_o follow_v that_o of_o a_o society_n belong_v of_o assembly_n ministry_n sacrament_n government_n discipline_n and_o by_o consequence_n we_o be_v the_o church_n which_o succeed_v not_o only_a de_fw-fr jure_fw-la but_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o of_o the_o age_n follow_v and_o even_o that_o which_o be_v immediate_o before_o the_o reformation_n these_o two_o proposition_n be_v frame_v in_o clear_a and_o distinct_a term_n they_o have_v neither_o ambiguity_n nor_o equivocation_n but_o i_o hold_v also_o that_o they_o be_v of_o a_o certain_a and_o indisputable_a truth_n for_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o ever_o be_v there_o any_o other_o true_a church_n then_o that_o of_o the_o true_o faithful_a and_o there_o never_o will_v be_v any_o other_o the_o holy_a scripture_n set_v down_o no_o other_o reason_n will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v any_o other_o the_o father_n never_o own_v any_o other_o this_o be_v the_o constant_a and_o evident_a principle_n of_o saint_n augustine_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o three_o part_n and_o it_o be_v also_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o other_o father_n as_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o almost_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o passage_n the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n say_v clemens_n of_o alexandria_n be_v but_o one_o only_a church_n which_o 7._o assemble_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o one_o only_a faith_n by_o the_o will_n of_o one_o only_a god_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o one_o only_a lord_n all_o those_o who_o be_v before_o ordain_v that_o be_v to_o say_v who_o god_n have_v predestinate_v to_o be_v just_o have_v know_v they_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n where_o be_v the_o place_n where_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v dwell_v say_v origen_n it_o be_v the_o mountain_n of_o 26._o ephraim_n which_o signify_v a_o fruitful_a mountain_n but_o where_o be_v those_o fruitful_a mountain_n among_o we_o where_o jesus_n christ_n dwell_v they_o be_v those_o on_o who_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n joy_n peace_n patience_n charity_n and_o other_o virtue_n may_v be_v find_v they_o be_v those_o fruitful_a mountain_n which_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o which_o be_v eminent_a for_o knowledge_n and_o hope_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v go_v over_o to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o gentile_a and_o their_o ancient_a solemnity_n be_v come_v to_o we_o because_o we_o have_v with_o we_o the_o true_a highpriest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchizedec_n true_a sacrifice_n be_v offer_v up_o among_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n and_o it_o be_v among_o we_o that_o he_o build_v with_o live_a stone_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n and_o elsewhere_o the_o church_n desire_v to_o be_v 1._o unite_v to_o jesus_n christ_n but_o note_v that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o further_a elsewhere_o explain_v those_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n 16._o and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n the_o church_n say_v he_o that_o god_n build_v consist_v in_o all_o those_o who_o be_v perfect_a and_o be_v full_a of_o those_o word_n thought_n and_o action_n that_o lead_v to_o blessedness_n and_o a_o little_a low_o how_o ought_v we_o to_o understand_v those_o word_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o for_o that_o expression_n be_v ambiguous_a be_v it_o the_o rock_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o or_o if_o it_o be_v of_o the_o church_n be_v it_o that_o the_o rock_n and_o the_o church_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n this_o latter_a i_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a for_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n prevail_v neither_o against_o the_o rock_n upon_o which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v build_v his_o church_n nor_o against_o the_o church_n according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o proverb_n that_o the_o way_n of_o the_o serpent_n be_v not_o find_v upon_o the_o rock_n if_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n do_v prevail_v against_o any_o there_o be_v neither_o that_o rock_n upon_o which_o jesus_n christ_n build_v the_o church_n nor_o the_o church_n that_o jesus_n christ_n build_v upon_o the_o rock_n for_o that_o rock_n be_v inaccessible_a to_o the_o serpent_n and_o strong_a than_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o as_o to_o the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v the_o building_n of_o jesus_n christ_n she_o can_v never_o let_v in_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n against_o she_o those_o gate_n may_v very_o well_o prevail_v against_o every_o man_n that_o be_v without_o the_o church_n and_o separate_v from_o that_o rock_n but_o never_o against_o the_o church_n jesus_n christ_n say_v saint_n ambrose_n know_v those_o that_o be_v he_o and_o as_o to_o those_o 3._o who_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o he_o he_o do_v not_o vouschafe_v even_o to_o know_v they_o and_o elsewhere_o god_n call_v his_o tabernacle_n bethlehem_n because_o the_o church_n of_o the_o righteous_a be_v his_o tabernacle_n and_o there_o be_v a_o mystery_n in_o it_o for_o bethlehem_n be_v situate_a upon_o the_o sea_n of_o galilee_n on_o the_o east_n side_n which_o signify_v to_o we_o that_o every_o soul_n that_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v call_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n or_o the_o church_n may_v be_v build_v upon_o the_o wave_n of_o this_o world_n but_o can_v never_o be_v drown_v it_o may_v be_v encounter_v but_o can_v never_o be_v overthrow_v because_o it_o repress_n and_o calm_v the_o wild_a impetuousness_n of_o suffering_n it_o look_v upon_o the_o shipwraeck_n of_o other_o while_o itself_o be_v 3._o safe_a from_o danger_n always_o ready_a to_o receive_v the_o illumination_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o rejoice_v under_o his_o ray_n and_o further_a elsewhere_o he_o say_v express_o that_o as_o the_o saint_n be_v the_o member_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 35._o so_o the_o wicked_a be_v the_o member_n of_o the_o devil_n saint_n hierome_n teach_v the_o same_o thing_n the_o church_n say_v he_o which_o be_v the_o assembly_n of_o all_o 26._o the_o saint_n be_v call_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n because_o she_o have_v in_o jesus_n christ_n a_o eternal_a firmness_n and_o in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o song_n of_o song_n he_o lay_v down_o this_o maxim_n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o assembly_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o 1._o she_o be_v bring_v in_o speak_v in_o the_o canticle_n as_o if_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v but_o one_o person_n and_o even_o the_o author_n of_o the_o commentary_n on_o the_o psalm_n ascribe_v to_o saint_n hierome_n explain_v these_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n i_o will_v drive_v away_o from_o the_o city_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n the_o city_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o 101._o saint_n the_o congregation_n of_o the_o just_a i_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o the_o father_n sometime_o give_v a_o very_a large_a extent_n to_o the_o church_n when_o they_o consider_v it_o as_o mingle_v with_o almost_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o worldly_a as_o we_o have_v frequent_o explain_v it_o already_o and_o it_o be_v to_o this_o idea_n that_o they_o refer_v their_o comparison_n of_o a_o field_n of_o the_o air_n and_o the_o rest_n which_o we_o have_v often_o mention_v but_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o when_o the_o question_n be_v to_o be_v decide_v which_o of_o the_o two_o party_n that_o make_v up_o that_o mix_a body_n be_v the_o church_n that_o they_o unanimous_o agree_v to_o give_v that_o title_n to_o the_o true_o faithful_a and_o to_o the_o righteous_a only_o and_o that_o they_o deprive_v the_o wicked_a and_o the_o worldly_a of_o it_o and_o it_o be_v for_o this_o reason_n that_o saint_n augustine_n 51._o always_o distinguish_v in_o that_o extent_n of_o the_o mix_a church_n two_o people_n
natural_o go_v before_o the_o ministry_n it_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o ministry_n but_o the_o ministry_n on_o the_o contrary_n depend_v upon_o it_o as_o in_o the_o civil_a society_n the_o magistracy_n depend_v upon_o the_o society_n and_o not_o the_o society_n upon_o the_o magistracy_n in_o the_o civil_a society_n the_o first_o thing_n that_o must_v be_v think_v on_o be_v that_o nature_n make_v man_n afterward_o we_o conceive_v that_o she_o assemble_v and_o unite_v they_o together_o and_o last_o that_o from_o that_o union_n that_o can_v not_o subsist_v without_o order_n mastistracy_n proceed_v it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o a_o religious_a society_n the_o first_o thing_n that_o grace_n do_v be_v to_o produce_v faith_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n after_o have_v make_v they_o believe_v she_o unite_v they_o and_o form_v a_o mutual_a communion_n between_o they_o and_o because_o their_o communion_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v without_o order_n and_o without_o government_n from_o thence_o the_o ministry_n arise_v so_o that_o a_o lawful_a ministry_n be_v after_o the_o true_a church_n and_o depend_v upon_o it_o it_o be_v not_o a_o lawful_a ministry_n that_o make_v it_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o it_o be_v so_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o its_o faith_n and_o it_o will_v yet_o be_v so_o when_o it_o actual_o have_v not_o any_o minister_n but_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o make_v the_o ministry_n to_o be_v lawful_a since_o it_o be_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o church_n that_o the_o justice_n of_o its_o ministry_n proceed_v the_o argument_n therefore_o of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la involve_v the_o dispute_n in_o a_o ridiculous_a circle_n for_o when_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o we_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n because_o we_o have_v not_o a_o lawful_a ministry_n we_o maintain_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o we_o have_v a_o lawful_a ministry_n because_o we_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o he_o can_v say_v that_o we_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o ridiculous_a circle_n because_o our_o way_n of_o reason_v follow_v the_o order_n of_o nature_n and_o his_o do_v not_o follow_v it_o i_o omit_v that_o his_o first_o proposition_n which_o be_v where_o there_o be_v no_o lawful_a ministry_n there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n be_v equivocal_a for_o either_o he_o understand_v by_o that_o lawful_a ministry_n minister_n actual_o establish_v or_o else_o he_o mean_v a_o right_a to_o establish_v they_o if_o the_o former_a his_o proposition_n be_v false_a for_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v without_o have_v actual_o any_o minister_n that_o be_v no_o way_n impossible_a as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v and_o if_o he_o mean_v the_o latter_a his_o proposition_n be_v not_o to_o his_o purpose_n for_o it_o will_v maintain_v that_o the_o society_n of_o the_o protestant_n have_v a_o full_a and_o entire_a right_o to_o set_v up_o minister_n for_o its_o government_n suppose_v that_o it_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n as_o it_o may_v appear_v by_o what_o i_o have_v say_v and_o as_o it_o will_v appear_v yet_o more_o clear_o by_o the_o follow_a observation_n 8._o i_o say_v then_o in_o the_o eight_o place_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v proper_o and_o chief_o the_o society_n of_o the_o true_o faithful_a not_o only_o have_v the_o right_a of_o the_o ministry_n but_o that_o it_o be_v also_o that_o body_n that_o make_v a_o call_v lawful_a of_o person_n to_o that_o office_n this_o truth_n will_v be_v confirm_v by_o what_o i_o have_v already_o show_v without_o any_o further_a need_n of_o new_a proof_n but_o as_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o true_a fountain_n whence_o that_o call_n proceed_v be_v itself_o alone_o almost_o all_o the_o difference_n that_o be_v between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o about_o this_o matter_n and_o that_o moreover_o it_o be_v extreme_o important_a to_o the_o subject_a we_o be_v upon_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o examine_v it_o a_o little_a more_o careful_o they_o can_v then_o take_v it_o ill_o that_o i_o insist_v a_o little_a more_o large_o upon_o this_o observation_n than_o i_o have_v do_v upon_o the_o rest_n to_o make_v it_o as_o clear_a as_o i_o can_v possible_o i_o propose_v to_o treat_v of_o three_o question_n the_o first_o shall_v be_v to_o know_v whether_o natural_o a_o call_n belong_v to_o the_o pastor_n only_o exclude_v the_o laity_n or_o whether_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n the_o second_o whether_o in_o case_n it_o belong_v to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o the_o church_n can_v of_o itself_o spoil_v itself_o of_o its_o right_n or_o whether_o it_o have_v lose_v it_o any_o way_n that_o it_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v and_o the_o three_o whether_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n may_v confer_v call_v immediate_o by_o itself_o or_o whether_o the_o church_n be_v always_o bind_v to_o confer_v they_o by_o mean_n of_o its_o pastor_n as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o question_n all_o the_o difficulty_n it_o can_v have_v come_v only_o from_o the_o false_a idea_n of_o a_o call_v that_o be_v ordinary_o form_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o first_o they_o make_v it_o a_o sacrament_n proper_o so_o call_v and_o they_o name_v it_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n from_o whence_o the_o think_v ready_o arise_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n can_v confer_v a_o sacrament_n they_o imagine_v next_o that_o that_o sacrament_n impress_n a_o certain_a character_n which_o they_o call_v a_o indelible_a character_n and_o which_o they_o conceive_v of_o as_o a_o physical_a quality_n or_o a_o absolute_a accident_n as_o they_o speak_v in_o the_o school_n and_o as_o a_o inherent_a accident_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o minister_n they_o persuade_v themselves_o further_o that_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n leave_v that_o sacrament_n and_o that_o physical_a quality_n in_o trust_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o be_v communicate_v by_o none_o but_o they_o with_o that_o they_o mix_v a_o great_a many_o ceremony_n and_o external_n mark_v as_o unction_n and_o the_o shave_v which_o they_o call_v the_o priesty_a crown_n they_o add_v to_o all_o that_o priestly_a habit_n the_o steal_v the_o alb_n the_o cope_n the_o cross_n the_o mitre_n the_o rochet_n hood_n pall_n etc._n etc._n they_o make_v mysterious_a allegory_n upon_o these_o ceremony_n and_o those_o ornament_n they_o distinguish_v those_o dignity_n into_o divers_a order_n they_o frame_v a_o hierarchy_n set_v out_o by_o the_o pompous_a title_n of_o prelate_n primate_fw-la arch-bishop_n patriarch_n cardinal_n etc._n etc._n they_o write_v great_a book_n upon_o all_o these_o thing_n and_o the_o half_a of_o their_o divinity_n be_v take_v up_o in_o explain_v their_o right_n authority_n privilege_n immunity_n apostolic_a grant_n exception_n etc._n etc._n what_o ground_n be_v here_o that_o all_o good_a man_n shall_v not_o believe_v that_o the_o churchman_n be_v at_o least_o man_n of_o another_o kind_n from_o all_o other_o and_o that_o they_o be_v no_o way_n make_v of_o the_o same_o blood_n of_o which_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o god_n have_v make_v all_o mankind_n notwithstanding_o when_o we_o examine_v well_o that_o call_v what_o it_o be_v to_o form_v a_o just_a idea_n of_o it_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o proper_o it_o be_v but_o a_o relation_n that_o result_v from_o the_o agreement_n of_o three_o will_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o god_n that_o of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o of_o the_o person_n call_v for_o the_o consent_n of_o these_o three_o make_v all_o the_o essence_n of_o that_o call_v and_o the_o other_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v add_v to_o it_o as_o examination_n election_n ordination_n be_v preambulatory_a condition_n or_o sign_n and_o external_n ceremony_n which_o more_o respect_v the_o manner_n of_o that_o call_v then_o the_o call_v itself_o in_o effect_n in_o a_o call_v we_o can_v remark_n but_o three_o interest_n that_o can_v engage_v one_o to_o it_o that_o of_o god_n since_o he_o that_o be_v call_v aught_o to_o speak_v and_o act_n in_o his_o name_n that_o of_o the_o church_n that_o aught_o to_o be_v instruct_v serve_v and_o govern_v and_o that_o of_o he_o who_o be_v call_v who_o ought_v to_o fulfil_v the_o function_n of_o his_o charge_n and_o to_o consecrate_v his_o watchful_a diligence_n care_n and_o labour_n to_o it_o from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o that_o call_v be_v sufficient_o form_v when_o god_n the_o church_n and_o the_o person_n call_v come_v to_o agree_v and_o we_o can_v rational_o conceive_v any_o thing_n else_o in_o it_o but_o as_o to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o call_v it_o do_v not_o fall_v into_o the_o question_n for_o we_o all_o acknowledge_v that_o no_o one_o can_v be_v force_v to_o receive_v the_o office_n of_o the_o